Selected quad for the lemma: end_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
end_n according_a time_n world_n 1,640 5 4.3978 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A63641 Antiquitates christianæ, or, The history of the life and death of the holy Jesus as also the lives acts and martyrdoms of his Apostles : in two parts. Taylor, Jeremy, 1613-1667.; Taylor, Jeremy, 1613-1667. Great exemplar of sanctity and holy life according to the christian institution.; Cave, William, 1637-1713. Antiquitates apostolicae, or, The lives , acts and martyrdoms of the holy apostles of our Saviour.; Cave, William, 1637-1713. Lives, acts and martydoms of the holy apostles of our Saviour. 1675 (1675) Wing T287; ESTC R19304 1,245,097 752

There are 40 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

of_o prepare_a torment_n he_o die_v a_o natural_a death_n in_o a_o good_a old_a age_n 5._o after_o this_o jesus_n have_v appoint_v a_o solemn_a meeting_n for_o all_o the_o brethren_n that_o can_v be_v collect_v from_o the_o dispersion_n and_o name_v a_o certain_a mountain_n in_o 〈◊〉_d appear_v to_o five_o hundred_o brethren_n at_o once_o and_o this_o be_v his_o most_o public_a and_o solemn_a manifestation_n and_o while_o some_o doubt_v jesus_n come_v according_a to_o the_o designation_n and_o speak_v to_o the_o eleven_o send_v they_o to_o preach_v to_o all_o the_o world_n repentance_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o his_o name_n promise_v to_o be_v with_o they_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n he_o appear_v also_o unto_o james_n but_o at_o what_o time_n be_v uncertain_a save_v that_o there_o be_v something_o concern_v it_o in_o the_o gospel_n of_o s._n matthew_n which_o the_o nazarene_o of_o 〈◊〉_d use_v and_o which_o it_o be_v likely_a themselves_o add_v out_o of_o report_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o of_o it_o in_o our_o greek_a copy_n the_o word_n be_v these_o when_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v the_o linen_n in_o which_o he_o be_v wrap_v to_o the_o servant_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n he_o go_v and_o appear_v unto_o james_n for_o james_n have_v vow_v after_o he_o receive_v the_o lord_n supper_n that_o he_o will_v eat_v no_o bread_n till_o he_o see_v the_o lord_n rise_v from_o the_o grave_n then_o the_o lord_n call_v for_o bread_n he_o bless_v it_o and_o break_v it_o and_o give_v it_o to_o james_n the_o just_a and_o say_v my_o brother_n eat_v bread_n for_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v rise_v from_o the_o sleep_n of_o death_n so_o that_o by_o this_o it_o shall_v seem_v to_o be_v do_v upon_o the_o day_n of_o the_o resurrection_n but_o the_o relation_n of_o it_o by_o s._n paul_n put_v it_o between_o the_o appearance_n which_o he_o make_v to_o the_o five_o hundred_o and_o that_o last_o to_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o be_v to_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n last_o of_o all_o when_o the_o apostle_n be_v at_o dinner_n he_o appear_v to_o they_o upbraid_v their_o incredulity_n and_o then_o he_o open_v their_o understanding_n that_o they_o may_v discern_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o again_o command_v they_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o all_o the_o world_n give_v they_o power_n to_o do_v miracle_n to_o cast_v out_o devil_n to_o cure_v 〈◊〉_d and_o institute_v the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n which_o he_o command_v shall_v together_o with_o the_o sermon_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v administer_v to_o all_o nation_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n then_o he_o lead_v they_o into_o judaea_n and_o they_o come_v to_o bethany_n and_o from_o thence_o to_o the_o mount_n olivet_n and_o he_o command_v they_o to_o stay_v in_o jerusalem_n till_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o promise_n of_o the_o father_n shall_v descend_v upon_o they_o which_o shall_v be_v accomplish_v in_o few_o day_n and_o then_o they_o shall_v know_v the_o time_n and_o the_o season_n and_o all_o thing_n necessary_a for_o their_o ministration_n and_o service_n and_o propagation_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o while_o he_o discourse_v many_o thing_n concern_v the_o kingdom_n behold_v a_o cloud_n come_v and_o part_v jesus_n from_o they_o and_o carry_v he_o in_o their_o sight_n up_o into_o heaven_n where_o he_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n bless_v for_o ever_o amen_n 6._o while_o his_o apostle_n stand_v gaze_v up_o to_o heaven_n two_o angel_n appear_v to_o they_o and_o tell_v they_o that_o jesus_n shall_v come_v in_o like_a manner_n as_o he_o be_v take_v away_o viz._n with_o glory_n and_o majesty_n and_o in_o the_o cloud_n and_o with_o the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n amen_n come_v lord_n jesus_n come_v quick_o ad_fw-la sect_n xvi_o consideration_n upon_o the_o accident_n happen_v in_o the_o interval_n after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o holy_a jesus_n until_o his_o resurrection_n jesus_n and_o mary_n in_o the_o garden_n joh._n 20._o 14._o 15._o 16._o marry_o turn_v about_o see_v jesus_n stand_v &_o know_v not_o y_z t_o it_o be_v jesus_n jesus_n say_v woman_n who_o seek_v thou_o she_o suppose_v he_o to_o be_v the_o garidner_n say_v sir_n if_o thou_o have_v bear_v he_o hence_o tell_v i_o etc_n jesus_n say_v unto_o she_o marry_o she_o turn_v herself_o and_o say_v unto_o he_o rabboni_n which_o be_v master_n jesus_n say_v unto_o she_o touch_v i_o not_o for_o etc._z marry_o magdalen_n come_v and_o tell_v the_o desciple_n that_o she_o have_v see_v the_o lord_n our_o lord_n ascension_n acts._n 1._o 9_o and_o when_o he_o have_v speak_v these_o thing_n while_o they_o behold_v he_o be_v take_v up_o &_o a_o cloud_n receive_v he_o out_o of_o their_o sight_n 10._o and_o while_o they_o steadfast_o look_v towards_o heaven_n behold_v two_o man_n stand_v by_o they_o in_o white_a apparel_n 11._o which_o also_o say_v this_o same_o jesus_n shall_v so_o come_v as_o you_o have_v see_v he_o go_v into_o heaven_n 1._o the_o holy_a jesus_n promise_v to_o the_o bless_a thief_n that_o he_o shall_v that_o day_n be_v with_o he_o in_o paradise_n which_o therefore_o be_v certain_o a_o place_n or_o state_n of_o blessedness_n because_o it_o be_v a_o promise_n and_o in_o the_o society_n of_o jesus_n who_o penal_a and_o afflictive_a part_n of_o his_o work_n of_o redemption_n be_v finish_v upon_o the_o cross._n our_o bless_a lord_n do_v not_o promise_v he_o shall_v that_o day_n be_v with_o he_o in_o his_o kingdom_n for_o that_o day_n it_o be_v not_o open_v and_o the_o everlasting_a door_n of_o those_o interior_a recess_n be_v to_o be_v shut_v till_o after_o the_o resurrection_n that_o himself_o be_v to_o ascend_v thither_o and_o make_v way_n for_o all_o his_o servant_n to_o enter_v in_o the_o same_o method_n in_o which_o he_o go_v before_o we_o our_o bless_a lord_n 〈◊〉_d descend_v into_o hell_n say_v the_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n from_o the_o sermon_n of_o saint_n peter_n as_o he_o from_o the_o word_n of_o david_n that_o be_v into_o the_o state_n of_o separation_n and_o common_a receptacle_n of_o spirit_n according_a to_o the_o style_n of_o scripture_n but_o the_o name_n of_o hell_n be_v nowhere_o in_o scripture_n a_o appellative_a of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n of_o the_o place_n of_o final_a and_o supreme_a glory_n but_o concern_v the_o verification_n of_o our_o lord_n promise_n to_o the_o beatified_a thief_n and_o his_o own_o state_n of_o separation_n we_o must_v take_v what_o light_n we_o can_v from_o scripture_n and_o what_o we_o can_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n 7._o s._n paul_n have_v two_o great_a revelation_n he_o be_v rapt_v up_o into_o paradise_n and_o he_o be_v rapt_v up_o into_o the_o three_o heaven_n and_o these_o he_o call_v vision_n &_o revelation_n not_o one_o but_o divers_a for_o paradise_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o heaven_n of_o the_o bless_a be_v itself_o a_o receptacle_n of_o holy_a soul_n make_v illustrious_a with_o visitation_n of_o angel_n and_o happy_a by_o be_v a_o repository_n for_o such_o spirit_n who_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n shall_v go_v forth_o into_o eternal_a glory_n in_o the_o interim_n christ_n have_v tread_v all_o the_o path_n before_o we_o and_o 〈◊〉_d this_o also_o we_o must_v pass_v through_o to_o arrive_v at_o the_o court_n of_o heaven_n justin_n martyr_n say_v it_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o heretical_a person_n to_o say_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o bless_a instant_o upon_o the_o separation_n from_o their_o body_n enter_v into_o the_o high_a heaven_n and_o 3._o irenaeus_n make_v heaven_n and_o the_o intermediate_v receptacle_n of_o soul_n to_o be_v distinct_a place_n both_o bless_a but_o huge_o differ_v in_o degree_n passim_fw-la tertullian_n be_v dogmatical_a in_o the_o assertion_n that_o till_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o great_a archangel_n be_v hear_v and_o as_o long_o as_o christ_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n make_v intercession_n for_o the_o church_n so_o long_o bless_v soul_n must_v expect_v the_o assemble_v of_o their_o brethren_n the_o great_a congregation_n of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o may_v all_o pass_v from_o their_o outer_a court_n into_o the_o inward_a tabernacle_n the_o holy_a of_o holies_n to_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n and_o as_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o no_o soul_n can_v enter_v into_o glory_n before_o our_o lord_n 〈◊〉_d by_o who_o we_o hope_v to_o have_v access_n so_o it_o be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o proportion_n 〈◊〉_d the_o mystery_n of_o our_o redemption_n that_o we_o believe_v the_o entrance_n into_o glory_n to_o have_v be_v make_v by_o our_o lord_n at_o his_o glorious_a ascension_n and_o that_o his_o soul_n go_v not_o thither_o before_o 〈◊〉_d to_o come_v back_o again_o
exercise_v their_o religious_a and_o mysterious_a rite_n that_o hence_o they_o fetch_v their_o denomination_n either_o from_o 〈◊〉_d as_o the_o ancient_n general_o think_v or_o more_o probable_o from_o the_o old_a cetlic_a word_n deru_fw-la both_o signify_v a_o oak_n and_o which_o the_o welsh_a the_o descendant_n of_o the_o ancient_a britain_n still_o call_v derw_n at_o this_o day_n but_o of_o this_o enough_o 9_o from_o the_o place_n where_o we_o proceed_v to_o the_o time_n when_o they_o usual_o pay_v their_o devotion_n and_o see_v order_n be_v necessary_a in_o all_o undertake_n and_o much_o more_o in_o the_o action_n of_o religion_n we_o can_v think_v that_o mankind_n be_v leave_v at_o a_o rove_a uncertainty_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a importance_n but_o that_o they_o have_v their_o state_v and_o solemn_a time_n of_o worship_n especial_o when_o we_o find_v among_o all_o nation_n even_o the_o most_o rude_a and_o unpolished_a heathen_n time_n peculiar_o set_v apart_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o their_o god_n and_o the_o public_a solemnity_n of_o religion_n and_o so_o no_o question_n it_o be_v in_o the_o more_o early_a age_n of_o the_o world_n they_o have_v fix_v and_o appropriate_a season_n when_o they_o meet_v together_o to_o do_v homage_n unto_o god_n and_o to_o offer_v up_o their_o joynt-acknowledgment_n to_o heaven_n thus_o we_o read_v of_o cain_n that_o he_o bring_v his_o oblation_n in_o process_n of_o time_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d at_o the_o end_n of_o day_n at_o one_o of_o those_o fix_a 〈◊〉_d and_o periodical_a return_n when_o they_o use_v to_o meet_v in_o the_o religious_a assembly_n the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d denote_v not_o simple_o a_o end_n but_o a_o determinate_a and_o a_o appoint_a end_n i_o know_v many_o with_o great_a zeal_n and_o eagerness_n contend_v that_o the_o sabbath_n or_o seven_o day_n from_o the_o creation_n be_v set_v apart_o and_o universal_o observe_v as_o the_o time_n of_o public_a worship_n and_o that_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n but_o alas_o the_o foundation_n upon_o which_o this_o opinion_n be_v build_v be_v very_o weak_a and_o sandy_a have_v nothing_o to_o rely_v on_o but_o one_o place_n where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n rest_v on_o the_o seven_o day_n from_o all_o his_o work_n bless_v the_o seven_o day_n and_o sanctify_v 3._o it_o which_o word_n be_v reasonable_o think_v to_o have_v be_v set_v down_o by_o moses_n by_o way_n of_o prolepsis_n as_o it_o be_v in_o his_o time_n if_o they_o relate_v at_o all_o to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o be_v not_o rather_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o god_n blessing_n and_o sanctify_v the_o seven_o day_n as_o have_v complete_v all_o his_o work_n in_o the_o create_v of_o man_n and_o in_o who_o as_o in_o the_o crown_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o creation_n he_o will_v sanctify_v himself_o for_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v mean_v of_o a_o weekly_a sabbath_n have_v as_o little_a countenance_n from_o this_o text_n as_o it_o have_v from_o the_o practice_n of_o those_o time_n there_o be_v no_o footstep_n or_o shadow_n of_o any_o such_o sabbath_n keep_v through_o all_o the_o patriarchal_a period_n of_o the_o church_n till_o the_o time_n of_o moses_n which_o beside_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o story_n be_v universal_o own_a by_o the_o ancient_a jew_n and_o very_o many_o of_o the_o father_n do_v express_o assert_v it_o 10._o the_o last_o circumstance_n concern_v the_o person_n by_o who_o the_o public_a worship_n be_v administer_v impossible_a it_o be_v that_o any_o society_n shall_v be_v regular_o manage_v where_o there_o be_v not_o some_o peculiar_a person_n to_o 〈◊〉_d direct_v and_o govern_v the_o affair_n of_o it_o and_o god_n who_o in_o all_o other_o thing_n be_v a_o god_n of_o order_n be_v much_o more_o so_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o therefore_o no_o doubt_n from_o the_o beginning_n appoint_v those_o who_o care_n and_o business_n it_o shall_v be_v to_o discharge_v the_o public_a part_n of_o piety_n and_o devotion_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o rest_n now_o the_o priesthood_n in_o those_o time_n be_v vest_v in_o the_o head_n of_o tribe_n and_o in_o the_o first-born_a of_o every_o family_n to_o the_o patriarch_n or_o head_n of_o every_o tribe_n it_o belong_v to_o bless_v the_o family_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o intercede_v for_o they_o by_o prayer_n and_o to_o minister_v in_o other_o solemn_a act_n of_o religion_n and_o this_o office_n hereditary_o descend_v to_o the_o first-born_a who_o have_v power_n to_o discharge_v it_o during_o the_o life_n of_o his_o father_n for_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o he_o who_o be_v priest_n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o primogeniture_n shall_v be_v also_o the_o elder_a of_o the_o house_n jacob_n who_o succeed_v in_o his_o brother_n be_v right_a offer_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o life_n of_o his_o father_n isaac_n and_o abraham_n be_v a_o priest_n though_o sem_fw-mi the_o head_n of_o the_o family_n and_o ten_o degree_n remove_v from_o he_o in_o a_o direct_a line_n be_v then_o alive_a yea_o survive_v abraham_n near_o forty_o year_n every_o first-born_a have_v three_o great_a prerogative_n a_o double_a portion_n of_o the_o paternal_a inheritance_n a_o lordship_n and_o principality_n over_o his_o brethren_n and_o a_o right_a to_o the_o priesthood_n to_o instruct_v they_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o divine_a thing_n and_o to_o manage_v the_o common_a office_n of_o religion_n so_o that_o in_o those_o time_n there_o be_v a_o particular_a priesthood_n in_o every_o family_n the_o administration_n whereof_o be_v usual_o appropriate_v to_o the_o first_o bear_v thus_o noah_n abraham_n and_o isaac_n offer_v sacrifice_n and_o job_n who_o live_v about_o that_o time_n or_o not_o long_o after_o both_o for_o his_o child_n and_o his_o friend_n thus_o 〈◊〉_d be_v a_o priest_n by_o his_o primogeniture_n and_o that_o goodly_a raiment_n of_o her_o son_n esau_n which_o rebeccah_n put_v upon_o jacob_n when_o he_o go_v in_o to_o his_o father_n be_v by_o many_o not_o improbable_o understand_v of_o the_o sacerdotal_a vestment_n wherein_o as_o first-born_a he_o be_v wont_a to_o execute_v his_o office_n of_o these_o priest_n we_o be_v to_o understand_v that_o place_n let_v the_o priest_n which_o come_v near_o to_o the_o lord_n 22._o sanctify_v themselves_o this_o can_v not_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o levitical_a priest_n the_o aaronical_a order_n not_o be_v yet_o institute_v and_o therefore_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o priesthood_n of_o the_o first-born_a and_o so_o solomon_n farchi_v gloss_n expound_v it_o thus_o when_o moses_n have_v build_v a_o altar_n at_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o mountain_n he_o send_v young_a man_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n which_o offer_v 5._o burnt-offering_n and_o sacrifice_v peace-offering_n unto_o the_o lord_n where_o for_o young_a man_n the_o chaldee_n paraphrase_n and_o the_o jerusalem_n targum_fw-la have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o first-born_a of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n so_o have_v that_o of_o jonathan_n who_o express_o add_v this_o reason_n for_o unto_o that_o very_a hour_n the_o worship_n remain_v among_o the_o first-born_a the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o covenant_n not_o be_v yet_o make_v nor_o the_o aaronical_a priesthood_n set_v up_o so_o when_o jacob_n bequeath_v his_o blessing_n to_o reuben_n reuben_n thou_o be_v my_o first-born_a my_o might_n and_o the_o beginning_n of_o my_o 3._o strength_n the_o excellency_n of_o dignity_n and_o the_o excellency_n of_o power_n the_o same_o jewish_a paraphrast_n tell_v we_o that_o there_o be_v three_o thing_n in_o this_o blessing_n convey_v and_o confirm_v to_o reuben_n the_o birthright_n the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o priesthood_n but_o that_o for_o his_o enormous_a and_o unnatural_a sin_n they_o be_v transfer_v to_o other_o the_o primogeniture_n to_o joseph_n the_o kingdom_n to_o judah_n and_o the_o priesthood_n to_o levi._n but_o though_o the_o sacerdotal_a function_n ordinary_o belong_v to_o the_o first-born_a yet_o be_v it_o not_o so_o whole_o invest_v in_o they_o but_o that_o it_o may_v in_o some_o case_n be_v exercise_v by_o young_a brother_n especial_o when_o passing_a into_o other_o family_n and_o themselves_o become_v head_n of_o tribe_n and_o family_n abraham_n we_o know_v be_v not_o a_o first-born_a and_o it_o be_v high_o probable_a that_o sem_fw-mi himself_z be_v not_o noah_n elder_a son_n moses_n be_v a_o priest_n yea_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o the_o jew_n call_v he_o the_o priest_n of_o priest_n and_o yet_o be_v but_o 〈◊〉_d second_o son_n and_o aaron_n young_a brother_n so_o that_o the_o case_n in_o short_a seem_v to_o lie_v thus_o the_o patriarch_n or_o survive_a head_n of_o every_o tribe_n be_v a_o kind_n of_o high_a priest_n over_o all_o the_o family_n that_o be_v descend_v from_o he_o the_o first-born_a in_o every_o family_n be_v the_o ordinary_a priest_n who_o may_v officiate_v in_o his_o father_n stead_n
idolatry_n to_o get_v ground_n among_o they_o 17._o the_o two_o tribe_n of_o judah_n and_o benjamin_n be_v loyal_a both_o to_o god_n and_o their_o prince_n continue_v obedient_a to_o their_o lawful_a sovereign_n and_o firm_o adhere_v to_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o temple_n though_o even_o here_o too_o impiety_n in_o some_o place_n maintain_v its_o ground_n have_v take_v root_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o solomon_n who_o through_o his_o overgreat_a partiality_n and_o fondness_n to_o his_o wife_n have_v be_v betray_v to_o give_v too_o much_o countenance_n to_o 〈◊〉_d the_o extirpation_n hereof_o be_v the_o design_n and_o attempt_v of_o all_o the_o pious_a and_o good_a prince_n of_o judah_n jehosaphat_n set_v himself_o in_o good_a earnest_n to_o recover_v religion_n and_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n to_o its_o ancient_a purity_n and_o lustre_n he_o abolish_v the_o grove_n and_o high_a place_n and_o appoint_v itinerant_a priest_n and_o levite_n to_o go_v from_o city_n to_o city_n to_o expound_v the_o law_n and_o instruct_v the_o people_n in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o their_o duty_n nay_o he_o himself_o hold_v a_o royal_a visitation_n go_v quite_o through_o the_o land_n and_o bring_v back_o the_o people_n to_o the_o lord_n 〈◊〉_d god_n of_o their_o father_n but_o under_o the_o succeed_a king_n religion_n again_o lose_v its_o ground_n and_o have_v be_v quite_o extinct_a during_o the_o tyranny_n and_o usurpation_n of_o athaliah_n but_o that_o good_a jehoiada_n the_o high_a priest_n keep_v it_o alive_a by_o his_o admirable_a zeal_n and_o industry_n while_o he_o live_v his_o pupil_n joas_n who_o owe_v both_o his_o crown_n and_o his_o life_n to_o he_o promote_v the_o design_n and_o purge_v the_o temple_n though_o after_o his_o tutor_n death_n he_o apostatise_v to_o profaneness_n and_o idolatry_n nor_o indeed_o be_v the_o reformation_n effectual_o advance_v till_o the_o time_n of_o hezekiah_n who_o no_o soon_o ascend_v the_o throne_n but_o he_o summon_v the_o priest_n and_o levite_n exhort_v they_o to_o begin_v at_o home_n and_o first_o to_o reform_v themselves_o then_o to_o cleanse_v and_o repair_v the_o temple_n he_o resettled_a the_o priest_n and_o levite_n in_o their_o proper_a place_n and_o office_n and_o cause_v they_o to_o offer_v all_o sort_n of_o sacrifice_n and_o the_o passeover_n to_o be_v universal_o celebrate_v with_o great_a strictness_n and_o solemnity_n he_o destroy_v the_o monument_n of_o idolatry_n take_v away_o the_o altar_n in_o jerusalem_n and_o have_v give_v commission_n the_o people_n do_v the_o like_a in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o kingdom_n break_v the_o image_n cut_v down_o the_o grove_n throw_v down_o the_o altar_n and_o high_a place_n until_o they_o have_v utter_o destroy_v they_o all_o but_o neither_o greatness_n nor_o piety_n can_v exempt_v any_o from_o the_o common_a law_n of_o mortality_n hezekiah_n die_v and_o his_o son_n manasseh_n succeed_v a_o wicked_a prince_n under_o who_o influence_n impiety_n like_o a_o land-flood_n break_v in_o upon_o religion_n and_o lay_v all_o waste_n before_o it_o but_o his_o grandchild_n josiah_n make_v some_o amends_o he_o give_v signal_n instance_n of_o a_o early_a piety_n for_o in_o the_o eight_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n while_o he_o be_v yet_o young_a he_o begin_v to_o seek_v 3._o after_o the_o god_n of_o david_n his_o father_n and_o in_o the_o twelve_o year_n he_o begin_v to_o purge_v judah_n and_o jerusalem_n he_o deface_v whatever_o have_v be_v abuse_v and_o prostitute_v to_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n throughout_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n repair_v god_n house_n and_o order_v its_o worship_n according_a to_o the_o prescript_n of_o the_o mosaic_a law_n a_o copy_n whereof_o they_o have_v find_v in_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o temple_n solemn_o engage_v himself_o and_o his_o people_n to_o be_v true_a to_o religion_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o cause_v so_o great_a and_o solemn_a a_o passeover_n to_o be_v hold_v that_o there_o be_v no_o passeover_n like_v to_o it_o keep_v in_o israel_n from_o the_o day_n of_o samuel_n and_o more_o he_o have_v do_v have_v not_o a_o immature_n death_n cut_v he_o off_o in_o the_o midst_n both_o of_o his_o day_n and_o his_o pious_a design_n and_o project_n not_o many_o year_n after_o god_n be_v high_o provoke_v by_o the_o prodigious_a impiety_n of_o that_o nation_n deliver_v it_o up_o to_o the_o army_n of_o the_o king_n of_o babylon_n who_o demolish_v the_o city_n harass_v the_o land_n and_o carry_v the_o people_n captive_a unto_o babylon_n and_o no_o wonder_n the_o divine_a patience_n can_v hold_v no_o long_o when_o all_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o people_n transgress_v very_o much_o after_o all_o the_o abomination_n of_o the_o heathen_a 14._o and_o pollute_v the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o he_o have_v hallow_v in_o jerusalem_n seventy_o year_n they_o remain_v under_o this_o captivity_n during_o which_o time_n the_o prophet_n daniel_n give_v lively_a and_o particular_a account_n of_o the_o messiah_n that_o he_o shall_v come_v into_o the_o world_n to_o introduce_v a_o law_n of_o everlasting_a righteousness_n to_o die_v as_o a_o sacrifice_n and_o expiation_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n and_o to_o put_v a_o period_n to_o the_o levitical_a sacrifice_n and_o oblation_n and_o whereas_o other_o prophecy_n have_v only_o in_o general_n define_v the_o time_n of_o the_o messiah_n come_v he_o particular_o determine_v the_o period_n that_o all_o this_o shall_v be_v at_o the_o end_n of_o lxx_o week_n that_o be_v at_o the_o expiration_n of_o ccccxc_n year_n which_o exact_o fall_v in_o with_o the_o time_n of_o our_o saviour_n appear_v in_o the_o world_n the_o seventy_o year_n captivity_n be_v run_v out_o by_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o king_n of_o babylon_n they_o be_v set_v free_a and_o by_o he_o permit_v and_o assist_v to_o repair_v jerusalem_n and_o rebuild_v the_o temple_n which_o be_v according_o do_v under_o the_o government_n of_o nehemiah_n and_o the_o succeed_a ruler_n and_o the_o temple_n finish_v by_o zorobabel_n and_o thing_n bring_v into_o some_o tolerable_a state_n of_o order_n and_o decency_n and_o so_o continue_v till_o the_o reign_n of_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n king_n of_o syria_n by_o who_o the_o temple_n be_v profane_v and_o violate_v and_o the_o jewish_a church_n miserable_o afflict_v and_o distress_v he_o thrust_v out_o onias_n the_o high_a priest_n and_o put_v in_o his_o brother_n jason_n a_o man_n lose_v both_o to_o religion_n and_o good_a manner_n and_o who_o by_o a_o vast_a sum_n of_o money_n have_v purchase_v the_o priesthood_n of_o antiochus_n at_o this_o time_n mathias_n a_o priest_n and_o the_o head_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d family_n stand_v up_o for_o his_o country_n after_o who_o come_v judas_n macchabaeus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o josephus_n true_o character_n he_o a_o man_n of_o a_o generous_a temper_n and_o a_o valiant_a mind_n ready_a 425._o to_o do_v or_o suffer_v any_o thing_n to_o assert_v the_o liberty_n and_o religion_n of_o his_o country_n followed_z both_o in_o his_o zeal_n and_o prosperous_a success_n by_o his_o two_o brother_n jonathan_n and_o simon_n successive_o high_a priest_n and_o commander_n after_o he_o next_o he_o come_v john_n surname_v hyrcanus_n than_o aristobulus_n alexander_n hyrcanus_n aristobulus_n junior_a alexander_n antigonus_n in_o who_o time_n herod_n the_o great_a have_v by_o the_o favour_n of_o antony_n obtain_v of_o the_o roman_a senate_n the_o sovereignty_n over_o the_o jewish_a nation_n and_o be_v willing_a that_o the_o priesthood_n shall_v entire_o depend_v upon_o his_o arbitrary_a disposure_n abrogate_a the_o succession_n of_o the_o asmonaean_a family_n and_o put_v in_o one_o ananel_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o josephus_n call_v 512._o he_o a_o obscure_a priest_n of_o the_o line_n of_o those_o who_o have_v be_v priest_n in_o babylon_n to_o he_o succeed_v aristobulus_n to_o he_o jesus_n the_o son_n of_o phabe_n to_o he_o simon_n who_o be_v depose_v next_o come_v mathias_n depose_v also_o by_o herod_n next_o he_o joazar_n who_o undergo_v the_o same_o fate_n from_o archelaus_n than_o jesus_n the_o son_n of_o sie_z after_o who_o joazar_n be_v again_o restore_v to_o the_o chair_n and_o under_o his_o pontificate_n though_o before_o his_o first_o deposition_n christ_n be_v bear_v thing_n every_o day_n grow_v worse_o among_o they_o till_o about_o seventy_o year_n after_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n come_v upon_o they_o to_o the_o uttermost_a and_o bring_v the_o roman_n who_o final_o take_v away_o their_o place_n and_o nation_n 18._o before_o we_o go_v off_o from_o this_o part_n of_o our_o discourse_n it_o may_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o take_v a_o more_o particular_a view_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n as_o it_o stand_v at_o the_o time_n of_o our_o saviour_n appear_v in_o the_o world_n as_o what_o may_v reflect_v some_o considerable_a light_n upon_o the_o
the_o first-fruit_n of_o the_o ground_n but_o a_o honest_a heart_n and_o a_o pious_a life_n and_o a_o grateful_a acknowledgement_n of_o our_o dependence_n upon_o god_n in_o the_o public_a solemnity_n of_o his_o praise_n and_o worship_n for_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n do_v not_o differ_v in_o this_o that_o the_o one_o command_v public_a worship_n the_o other_o not_o but_o that_o under_o the_o one_o public_a worship_n be_v fix_v to_o one_o only_a place_n under_o the_o other_o it_o be_v free_a to_o any_o where_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n have_v place_v we_o it_o be_v part_n of_o the_o duty_n bind_v upon_o we_o by_o natural_a and_o unalterable_a obligation_n that_o we_o shall_v public_o meet_v together_o for_o the_o solemn_a celebration_n of_o the_o divine_a honour_n and_o service_n 13._o nor_o be_v the_o oeconomy_n of_o the_o gospel_n less_o extensive_a in_o time_n than_o place_n the_o old_a testament_n be_v only_o a_o temporary_a dispensation_n that_o of_o the_o gospel_n be_v to_o last_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o law_n be_v to_o continue_v only_o for_o a_o little_a time_n the_o gospel_n be_v a_o everlasting_a covenant_n the_o one_o to_o be_v quick_o antiquate_v and_o abolish_v the_o other_o never_o to_o be_v do_v away_o by_o any_o other_o to_o succeed_v it_o the_o jew_n indeed_o stickle_v hard_a for_o the_o perpetual_a and_o immutable_a obligation_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o frequent_o urge_v we_o with_o those_o place_n where_o the_o covenant_n of_o circumcision_n be_v call_v a_o everlasting_a covenant_n and_o god_n say_v to_o 7._o 〈◊〉_d choose_v the_o temple_n at_o jerusalem_n to_o place_v his_o name_n there_o for_o ever_o to_o give_v the_o land_n of_o canaan_n 8._o to_o abraham_n and_o his_o seed_n for_o a_o everlasting_a possession_n thus_o the_o law_n of_o the_o passeover_n be_v 14._o 14._o call_v a_o ordinance_n for_o ever_o the_o command_n of_o the_o first-fruit_n a_o statute_n for_o ever_o and_o the_o like_a in_o other_o place_n which_o seem_v to_o intimate_v a_o perpetual_a and_o unalterable_a dispensation_n but_o the_o answer_n be_v short_a and_o plain_a that_o this_o phrase_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o ever_o though_o when_o it_o be_v apply_v to_o god_n it_o always_o denote_v eternity_n yet_o when_o it_o be_v attribute_v to_o other_o thing_n it_o imply_v no_o more_o than_o a_o periodical_a duration_n limit_v according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o the_o lawgiver_n or_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n thus_o the_o hebrew_n servant_n be_v to_o serve_v his_o master_n for_o 6._o ever_o that_o be_v but_o for_o seven_o year_n till_o the_o next_o year_n of_o jubilee_n he_o shall_v walk_v before_o my_o 36._o anoint_a for_o ever_o say_v god_n concern_v samuel_n that_o be_v be_v a_o priest_n all_o his_o day_n thus_o when_o the_o ritual_a service_n of_o the_o mosaic_a law_n be_v call_v statute_n for_o ever_o the_o meaning_n be_v that_o they_o shall_v continue_v a_o long_a time_n obligatory_a until_o the_o time_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d in_o who_o day_n the_o sacrifice_n and_o oblation_n be_v to_o cease_v and_o those_o carnal_a ceremony_n to_o give_v way_n to_o the_o more_o spiritual_a service_n of_o the_o gospel_n indeed_o the_o very_a typical_a nature_n of_o that_o dispensation_n evident_o argue_v it_o to_o be_v but_o for_o a_o time_n the_o shadow_n be_v to_o cease_v that_o the_o substance_n may_v take_v place_n and_o though_o many_o of_o they_o continue_v some_o considerable_a time_n after_o christ_n death_n yet_o they_o lose_v their_o positive_a and_o obligatory_a power_n and_o be_v use_v only_o as_o thing_n indifferent_a in_o compliance_n with_o the_o inveterate_a prejudices_fw-la of_o new_a convert_v late_o bring_v over_o from_o judaisme_n and_o who_o can_v not_o quick_o lay_v aside_o that_o great_a veneration_n which_o they_o have_v for_o the_o rite_n of_o the_o mosaic_a institution_n though_o even_o in_o this_o respect_n it_o be_v not_o long_o before_o all_o jewish_a ceremony_n be_v throw_v off_o and_o moses_n quite_o turn_v out_o of_o door_n whereas_o the_o evangelical_n state_n be_v to_o run_v parallel_n with_o the_o 20._o age_n and_o duration_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v the_o everlasting_a covenant_n the_o everlasting_a gospel_n 6._o the_o last_o dispensation_n that_o god_n will_v make_v to_o the_o world_n god_n who_o at_o sundry_a time_n and_o in_o 2._o divers_a manner_n speak_v in_o time_n pass_v by_o the_o prophet_n have_v in_o these_o last_o day_n speak_v to_o we_o by_o his_o 〈◊〉_d in_o which_o respect_n the_o gospel_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o law_n be_v style_v a_o kingdom_n that_o can_v 28._o 〈◊〉_d move_v the_o 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o forego_n verse_n speak_v concern_v the_o moysaicall_a state_n who_o voice_n say_v he_o then_o shake_v the_o earth_n but_o now_o he_o have_v promise_v say_v yet_o once_o more_o i_o shake_v not_o the_o earth_n only_o but_o also_o the_o heaven_n a_o phrase_n peculiar_a to_o the_o scripture_n to_o note_v the_o introduce_v a_o new_a scene_n and_o state_n of_o thing_n and_o this_o word_n yet_o once_o more_o signify_o the_o remove_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v shake_v as_o of_o thing_n that_o be_v make_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o can_v be_v shake_v may_v remain_v that_o be_v that_o the_o state_n of_o the_o gospel_n may_v endure_v for_o ever_o hence_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o have_v a_o unchangeable_a priesthood_n to_o be_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o to_o be_v consecrate_v for_o evermore_o from_o all_o which_o it_o appear_v how_o incomparable_o happy_a we_o christian_n be_v under_o the_o gospel_n above_o what_o the_o jew_n be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n god_n have_v place_v we_o under_o the_o best_a of_o dispensation_n free_v we_o from_o those_o many_o nice_a and_o troublesome_a observance_n to_o which_o they_o be_v tie_v put_v we_o under_o the_o clear_a discovery_n and_o revelation_n and_o give_v we_o the_o most_o noble_a rational_a and_o masculine_a religion_n a_o religion_n the_o most_o perfective_a of_o our_o nature_n and_o the_o most_o conducive_a to_o our_o happiness_n while_o their_o covenant_n at_o best_a be_v faulty_a and_o after_o all_o can_v not_o make_v he_o that_o do_v the_o service_n perfect_a in_o thing_n pertain_v to_o the_o conscience_n bless_a be_v the_o eye_n which_o see_v the_o 24._o thing_n that_o you_o see_v for_o i_o 〈◊〉_d you_o that_o many_o prophet_n and_o king_n have_v desire_v to_o see_v those_o thing_n which_o you_o see_v and_o have_v not_o see_v they_o and_o to_o hear_v those_o thing_n which_o you_o hear_v and_o have_v not_o hear_v they_o the_o end_n of_o the_o apparatus_fw-la the_o great_a exemplar_n of_o sanctity_n and_o holy_a life_n according_a to_o the_o christian_a institution_n describe_v in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o life_n and_o death_n of_o the_o everblessed_n jesus_n christ_n the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n with_o consideration_n and_o discourse_n upon_o the_o several_a part_n of_o the_o story_n and_o prayer_n fit_v to_o the_o several_a mystery_n in_o three_o part_n the_o five_o edition_n by_o jer_n taylor_n chaplain_n in_o ordinary_a to_o king_n charles_n the_o first_o and_o late_a lord_n bishop_n of_o down_n and_o conner_n london_n print_v by_o r._n norton_n for_o r._n royston_n bookseller_n to_o his_o most_o sacred_a majesty_n at_o the_o angel_n in_o amen-corner_n 1675._o to_o the_o right_n honourable_a and_o most_o true_o noble_a lord_n christopher_z lord_n hatton_n baron_n hatton_n of_o kirby_n etc._n etc._n my_o lord_n when_o interest_n divide_v the_o church_n and_o the_o calenture_n of_o man_n breathe_v out_o in_o problem_n and_o unactive_a discourse_n each_o part_n in_o pursuance_n of_o its_o own_o portion_n follow_v that_o proposition_n which_o comply_v with_o and_o bend_v in_o all_o the_o flexure_n of_o its_o temporal_a end_n and_o while_o all_o strive_v for_o truth_n they_o hug_v their_o own_o opinion_n dress_v up_o in_o her_o imagery_n and_o they_o dispute_v for_o ever_o and_o either_o the_o question_n be_v indeterminable_a or_o which_o be_v worse_o man_n will_v never_o be_v convince_v for_o such_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o dispute_n that_o they_o begin_v common_o in_o mistake_v they_o proceed_v with_o zeal_n and_o fancy_n and_o end_v not_o at_o all_o but_o in_o schism_n and_o uncharitable_a name_n and_o too_o often_o dip_v their_o foot_n in_o blood_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n he_o that_o get_v the_o better_a of_o his_o adversary_n oftentimes_o get_v no_o good_a to_o himself_o because_o although_o he_o have_v fast_o hold_v upon_o the_o right_a side_n of_o the_o problem_n he_o may_v be_v a_o ill_a man_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o triumphant_a disputation_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o here_o that_o god_n will_v have_v man_n felicity_n to_o grow_v for_o our_o condition_n have_v be_v extreme_o miserable_a if_o our_o final_a state_n have_v be_v place_v upon_o
tremulous_a and_o so_o be_v the_o most_o holy_a and_o eminent_a religious_a person_n more_o full_a of_o awfulness_n and_o fear_v and_o modesty_n and_o humility_n so_o that_o in_o true_a divinity_n and_o right_n speak_v there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o the_o unitive_a way_n of_o religion_n save_v only_o in_o the_o effect_n of_o duty_n obedience_n and_o the_o express_v of_o the_o precise_a virtue_n of_o religion_n meditation_n in_o order_n to_o a_o good_a life_n let_v they_o be_v as_o exalt_v as_o the_o capacity_n of_o the_o person_n and_o subject_n will_v endure_v up_o to_o the_o height_n of_o contemplation_n but_o if_o contemplation_n come_v to_o be_v a_o distinct_a thing_n and_o something_o beside_o or_o beyond_o a_o distinct_a degree_n of_o virtuous_a meditation_n it_o be_v lose_v to_o all_o sense_n and_o religion_n and_o prudence_n let_v no_o man_n be_v hasty_a to_o eat_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o paradise_n before_o his_o time_n 28._o and_o now_o i_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o enumerate_v the_o bless_a fruit_n of_o holy_a meditation_n for_o it_o be_v a_o grace_n that_o be_v instrumental_a to_o all_o effect_n to_o the_o production_n of_o all_o virtue_n and_o the_o extinction_n of_o all_o vice_n and_o by_o consequence_n the_o inhabitation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n within_o we_o be_v the_o natural_a or_o proper_a emanation_n from_o the_o frequent_a exercise_n of_o this_o duty_n only_o it_o have_v something_o particular_o excellent_a beside_o its_o general_a influence_n for_o meditation_n be_v that_o part_n of_o prayer_n which_o knit_v the_o soul_n to_o its_o right_a object_n and_o confirm_v and_o make_v actual_a our_o intention_n and_o devotion_n meditation_n be_v the_o tongue_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o language_n of_o our_o spirit_n and_o our_o wander_a thought_n in_o prayer_n be_v but_o the_o neglect_v of_o meditation_n and_o recession_n from_o that_o duty_n and_o according_a as_o we_o neglect_v meditation_n so_o be_v our_o prayer_n imperfect_a meditation_n be_v the_o soul_n of_o prayer_n and_o the_o intention_n of_o our_o spirit_n but_o in_o all_o other_o thing_n meditation_n be_v the_o instrument_n and_o conveyance_n it_o habituate_v our_o affection_n to_o heaven_n it_o have_v permanent_a content_n it_o produce_v constancy_n of_o purpose_n despise_v of_o thing_n below_o inflame_a desire_n of_o virtue_n love_v of_o god_n self-denial_n humility_n of_o understanding_n and_o universal_a correction_n of_o our_o life_n and_o manner_n the_o prayer_n holy_a and_o eternal_a jesus_n who_o whole_a life_n and_o doctrine_n be_v a_o perpetual_a sermon_n of_o holy_a life_n a_o treasure_n of_o wisdom_n and_o a_o repository_n of_o divine_a material_n for_o meditation_n give_v i_o grace_n to_o understand_v diligence_n and_o attention_n to_o consider_v care_v to_o lay_v up_o and_o carefulness_n to_o reduce_v to_o practise_v all_o those_o action_n discourse_n and_o pious_a lesson_n and_o intimation_n by_o which_o thou_o do_v express_o teach_v or_o tacit_o imply_v or_o mysterious_o signify_v our_o duty_n let_v my_o understanding_n become_v as_o spiritual_a in_o its_o employment_n and_o purpose_n as_o it_o be_v immaterial_a in_o its_o nature_n fill_v my_o memory_n as_o a_o vessel_n of_o election_n with_o remembrance_n and_o notion_n high_o compunctive_a and_o great_o incentive_a of_o all_o the_o part_n of_o 〈◊〉_d let_v thy_o holy_a spirit_n dwell_v in_o my_o soul_n instruct_v my_o knowledge_n sanctify_v my_o thought_n guide_v my_o affection_n direct_v my_o will_n in_o the_o choice_n of_o virtue_n that_o it_o may_v be_v the_o great_a employment_n of_o my_o life_n to_o meditate_v in_o thy_o law_n to_o study_v thy_o preceptive_a will_n to_o understand_v even_o the_o nicety_n and_o circumstantial_o of_o my_o duty_n that_o ignorance_n may_v neither_o occasion_v a_o sin_n nor_o become_v a_o punishment_n take_v from_o i_o all_o vanity_n of_o spirit_n lightness_n of_o fancy_n curiosity_n and_o impertinency_n of_o inquiry_n illusion_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o fantastic_a deception_n let_v my_o thought_n be_v as_o my_o religion_n plain_a honest_a pious_a simple_a prudent_a and_o charitable_a of_o great_a employment_n and_o force_n to_o the_o production_n of_o virtue_n and_o extermination_n of_o vice_n but_o suffer_v no_o transportation_n of_o sense_n and_o vanity_n nothing_o great_a than_o the_o capacity_n of_o my_o soul_n nothing_o that_o may_v minister_v to_o any_o intemperances_n of_o spirit_n but_o let_v i_o be_v whole_o inebriate_v with_o love_n and_o that_o love_v whole_o spend_v in_o do_v such_o action_n as_o best_o please_v thou_o in_o the_o condition_n of_o my_o infirmity_n and_o the_o security_n of_o humility_n till_o thou_o shall_v please_v to_o draw_v the_o curtain_n and_o reveal_v thy_o interior_a beauty_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o thy_o eternal_a glory_n which_o grant_v for_o thy_o mercy_n be_v sake_n o_o holy_a and_o eternal_a jesus_n amen_n the_o goodly_a cedar_n of_o apostolic_a &_o catholic_n episcopacy_n compare_v with_o the_o modern_a shoot_v &_o slip_v of_o divide_a novelty_n in_o the_o church_n before_o the_o introduction_n of_o the_o apostle_n live_v in_o rama_fw-mi be_v there_o a_o voice_n hear_v lamentation_n and_o weep_v and_o great_a mourning_n ●●●hel_n weep_v for_o her_o child_n and_o will_v not_o be_v comfort_v because_o they_o be_v not_o sect_n vi_o of_o the_o death_n of_o the_o holy_a innocent_n or_o the_o babe_n of_o bethlehem_n and_o the_o flight_n of_o jesus_n into_o egypt_n the_o kill_v the_o infant_n s_o mat._n 2._o 18_o in_o rama_fw-mi be_v there_o a_o voice_n hear_v lamentation_n and_o weep_v and_o great_a mourning_n rachel_n weep_v for_o her_o child_n and_o will_v not_o be_v comfort_v because_o they_o be_v not_o the_o flight_n into_o egypt_n s._n mat._n 2._o 14._o when_o he_o arise_v he_o take_v the_o young_a child_n and_o his_o mother_n by_o night_n and_o depart_v into_o egypt_n 1._o all_o this_o while_n herod_n wait_v for_o the_o return_n of_o the_o wise_a man_n that_o they_o may_v give_v direction_n where_o the_o child_n do_v lie_v and_o his_o sword_n may_v find_v he_o out_o with_o a_o certain_a and_o direct_a execution_n but_o when_o he_o see_v that_o he_o be_v mock_v of_o the_o wise_a man_n he_o be_v exceed_v wroth_a for_o it_o now_o begin_v to_o deserve_v his_o trouble_n when_o his_o purpose_n which_o be_v most_o secret_a begin_v to_o be_v contradict_v and_o divert_v with_o a_o prevention_n as_o if_o they_o be_v resist_v by_o a_o all-seeing_a and_o almighty_a providence_n he_o begin_v to_o suspect_v the_o hand_n of_o heaven_n be_v in_o it_o and_o see_v there_o be_v nothing_o for_o his_o purpose_n to_o be_v act_v unless_o he_o can_v dissolve_v the_o golden_a chain_n of_o predestination_n herod_n believe_v the_o divine_a oracle_n foretell_v that_o a_o king_n shall_v be_v bear_v in_o bethlehem_n and_o yet_o his_o ambition_n have_v make_v he_o so_o stupid_a that_o he_o attempt_v to_o cancel_v the_o decree_n of_o heaven_n for_o if_o he_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o prophecy_n why_o be_v he_o trouble_v if_o he_o do_v believe_v they_o how_o can_v he_o possible_o hinder_a that_o event_n which_o god_n have_v foretell_v himself_o will_v certain_o bring_v to_o pass_v 2._o and_o therefore_o since_o god_n already_o have_v hinder_v he_o from_o the_o execution_n of_o a_o distinguish_a sword_n he_o resolve_v to_o send_v a_o sword_n of_o indiscrimination_n and_o confusion_n hope_v that_o if_o he_o kill_v all_o the_o babe_n of_o bethlehem_n this_o young_a king_n reign_n also_o shall_v soon_o determine_v he_o therefore_o send_v forth_o and_o 〈◊〉_d all_o the_o child_n that_o be_v in_o bethlehem_n and_o all_o the_o coast_n thereof_o from_o two_o year_n old_a and_o under_o according_a to_o the_o time_n which_o he_o have_v diligent_o inquire_v of_o the_o wise_a man_n for_o this_o execution_n be_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o second_o 〈◊〉_d year_n after_o christ_n nativity_n as_o in_o all_o probability_n we_o guess_v not_o at_o the_o two_o year_n end_n as_o some_o suppose_v because_o as_o his_o malice_n be_v subtle_a so_o he_o intend_v it_o shall_v be_v secure_a and_o though_o he_o have_v be_v diligent_a in_o his_o inquiry_n and_o be_v near_o the_o time_n in_o his_o computation_n yet_o he_o that_o be_v never_o spare_v of_o the_o life_n of_o other_o will_v now_o to_o secure_v his_o kingdom_n rather_o overact_v his_o severity_n for_o some_o month_n than_o by_o do_v execution_n but_o just_a to_o the_o tittle_n of_o his_o account_n hazard_v the_o escape_n of_o the_o messiah_n 3._o this_o execution_n be_v sad_a cruel_a and_o universal_a no_o abatement_n make_v for_o the_o dire_a shrieking_n of_o the_o mother_n no_o tender-hearted_a soldier_n be_v employ_v no_o hard-hearted_a person_n be_v soften_v by_o the_o weep_a eye_n and_o pity-begging_a look_n of_o those_o mother_n that_o wonder_v how_o it_o be_v possible_a any_o person_n shall_v hurt_v their_o pretty_a suckling_n no_o
meat_n and_o tear_n our_o drink_n which_o although_o they_o be_v unpleasant_a and_o harsh_a to_o natural_a appetite_n yet_o by_o the_o operation_n and_o influence_n of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n they_o be_v make_v instrument_n of_o health_n and_o life_n and_o salvation_n 12._o the_o devil_n perceive_v jesus_n to_o be_v a_o person_n of_o great_a eminency_n and_o perfection_n than_o to_o be_v move_v by_o sensual_a and_o low_a desire_n make_v a_o second_o assault_n by_o a_o temptation_n something_o more_o spiritual_a and_o tempt_v he_o to_o presumption_n and_o indiscreet_a confidence_n to_o a_o throw_v himself_o down_o from_o the_o pinnacle_n of_o the_o temple_n upon_o the_o stock_n of_o predestination_n that_o god_n may_v secure_v he_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n and_o so_o prove_v his_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o indeed_o it_o be_v usual_a with_o the_o devil_n when_o severe_a person_n have_v so_o much_o mortify_v their_o low_a appetite_n that_o they_o be_v not_o easy_o overcome_v by_o a_o invitation_n of_o carnality_n or_o intemperance_n to_o stir_v they_o to_o opinion_n of_o their_o own_o sanctity_n and_o make_v their_o first_o escape_v prove_v their_o second_o and_o great_a danger_n but_o that_o the_o devil_n shall_v persuade_v jesus_n to_o throw_v himself_o down_o because_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v a_o invitation_n to_o no_o purpose_n save_v only_o that_o it_o give_v occasion_n to_o this_o truth_n that_o god_n providence_n secure_v all_o his_o son_n in_o the_o way_n of_o nature_n and_o while_o they_o be_v do_v their_o duty_n but_o love_v not_o to_o be_v tempt_v to_o act_n unreasonable_a and_o unnecessary_a god_n will_v protect_v his_o servant_n in_o or_o from_o all_o evil_n happen_v without_o their_o knowledge_n or_o against_o their_o will_n but_o not_o from_o evil_n of_o their_o own_o procure_n heron_n a_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o desert_n suffer_v the_o same_o temptation_n and_o be_v overcome_v by_o it_o for_o he_o die_v with_o his_o fall_n sinful_o and_o inglorious_o for_o the_o caress_n of_o god_n love_n to_o his_o saint_n and_o servant_n be_v security_n against_o all_o but_o themselves_o the_o devil_n and_o all_o the_o world_n offer_v to_o do_v they_o mischief_n but_o then_o they_o shall_v be_v safe_a because_o they_o be_v innocent_a if_o they_o once_o offer_v to_o do_v the_o same_o to_o themselves_o they_o lose_v their_o protection_n because_o they_o lose_v their_o prudence_n and_o their_o charity_n but_o here_o also_o it_o will_v concern_v all_o those_o who_o by_o their_o eminent_a employment_n and_o great_a ministery_n in_o ecclesiastical_n be_v set_v upon_o the_o pinnacle_n of_o the_o temple_n to_o take_v care_n that_o the_o devil_n tempt_v not_o they_o to_o a_o precipice_n a_o fall_n from_o so_o great_a a_o height_n will_v break_v the_o bone_n in_o piece_n and_o yet_o there_o also_o the_o station_n be_v less_o firm_a the_o posture_n most_o uneasy_a the_o prospect_n vertiginous_a and_o the_o devil_n busy_a and_o desirous_a to_o thrust_v we_o headlong_o 13._o s._n hierom_n here_o observe_v well_o the_o devil_n intend_v mischief_n to_o our_o bless_a saviour_n invite_v he_o to_o cast_v himself_o down_o he_o may_v persuade_v we_o to_o a_o fall_n but_o can_v precipitate_v matt._n we_o without_o our_o own_o act_n and_o it_o be_v a_o infinite_a mercy_n in_o god_n that_o the_o devil_n who_o be_v of_o malice_n infinite_a be_v of_o so_o restrain_v and_o limit_v a_o power_n that_o he_o can_v do_v we_o no_o ghostly_a disadvantage_n but_o by_o persuade_v we_o to_o do_v it_o ourselves_o and_o then_o it_o will_v be_v a_o strange_a imprudence_n to_o lay_v violent_a and_o unreasonable_a hand_n upon_o ourselves_o and_o do_v that_o mischief_n which_o our_o strong_a and_o most_o malicious_a adversary_n can_v or_o to_o be_v invite_v by_o the_o only_a rhetoric_n of_o a_o dog_n bark_v to_o come_v near_o he_o to_o untie_v his_o chain_n to_o unloose_v his_o muzzle_n for_o no_o other_o end_n but_o that_o we_o may_v be_v bite_v just_o such_o a_o fool_n be_v every_o person_n that_o consent_v to_o the_o temptation_n of_o the_o devil_n 14._o by_o this_o time_n the_o devil_n begin_v to_o perceive_v that_o this_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o design_v to_o be_v the_o king_n of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o resolve_v for_o the_o last_o assault_n to_o proffer_n he_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n think_v ambition_n more_o likely_a to_o ruin_v he_o because_o he_o know_v it_o be_v that_o which_o prevail_v upon_o himself_o and_o all_o those_o fall_v star_n the_o angel_n of_o darkness_n that_o the_o devil_n tell_v a_o lie_n it_o be_v most_o likely_a when_o he_o say_v he_o have_v power_n to_o dispose_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n for_o original_o and_o by_o proper_a inherent_a right_a god_n alone_o dispose_v all_o government_n but_o it_o be_v also_o certain_a that_o the_o devil_n be_v a_o person_n capable_a of_o a_o delegate_v employment_n in_o some_o great_a mutation_n of_o state_n and_o many_o probability_n have_v be_v observe_v by_o wise_a personage_n persuade_v that_o the_o grandeur_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v in_o the_o degree_n of_o increment_n and_o decrement_n permit_v to_o the_o power_n and_o manage_n of_o the_o devil_n that_o the_o greatness_n of_o that_o government_n be_v in_o all_o appearance_n full_a of_o advantage_n to_o satan_n kingdom_n and_o employ_v for_o the_o dis-improvement_n of_o the_o weak_a beginning_n and_o improbable_a increase_n of_o christianity_n may_v give_v lustre_n and_o demonstration_n to_o it_o that_o it_o come_v from_o god_n since_o the_o great_a permission_n of_o power_n make_v to_o the_o devil_n and_o act_v with_o all_o art_n and_o malice_n in_o defiance_n of_o the_o religion_n can_v produce_v no_o other_o effect_n upon_o it_o but_o that_o it_o make_v it_o grow_v great_a and_o the_o greatness_n be_v make_v more_o miraculous_a since_o the_o devil_n when_o his_o chain_n be_v off_o fain_o will_v but_o can_v not_o suppress_v it_o 15._o the_o lamb_n of_o god_n that_o hear_v he_o with_o patience_n tempt_v he_o to_o do_v himself_o a_o mischief_n and_o to_o throw_v himself_o headlong_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n endure_v it_o when_o he_o tempt_v to_o a_o direct_a dishonour_n of_o god_n our_o own_o injury_n be_v opportunity_n of_o patience_n but_o when_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o his_o immediate_a honour_n be_v the_o question_n then_o be_v the_o occasion_n and_o precise_a minute_n for_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o a_o clear-shining_a and_o unconsuming_a zeal_n but_o the_o care_n of_o god_n glory_n have_v so_o fill_v and_o employ_v all_o the_o faculty_n of_o jesus_n that_o he_o take_v no_o notice_n of_o the_o offer_n and_o it_o be_v well_o also_o that_o we_o have_v few_o opinion_n of_o the_o lustre_n of_o worldly_a dignity_n or_o at_o least_o that_o we_o in_o imitation_n of_o our_o bless_a master_n shall_v resuse_v to_o accept_v all_o the_o world_n when_o it_o be_v to_o be_v buy_v of_o the_o devil_n at_o the_o expense_n of_o a_o deadly_a sin_n for_o that_o government_n can_v be_v very_o honourable_a that_o make_v we_o slave_n to_o the_o worst_a of_o tyrant_n and_o all_o those_o prince_n and_o great_a personage_n who_o by_o injury_n and_o usurpation_n possess_v and_o invade_v other_o right_n will_v do_v well_o to_o consider_v that_o a_o kingdom_n be_v too_o dear_o pay_v for_o if_o the_o condition_n be_v first_o to_o worship_v the_o devil_n 16._o when_o the_o devil_n can_v do_v no_o good_a he_o depart_v for_o a_o time_n if_o he_o can_v ever_o have_v spy_v a_o time_n of_o return_v he_o want_v not_o will_n nor_o malice_n to_o observe_v and_o use_v it_o and_o although_o jesus_n be_v a_o person_n without_o danger_n yet_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n describe_v that_o circumstance_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o have_v the_o security_n of_o a_o deep_a peace_n when_o we_o have_v have_v the_o success_n of_o conqueror_n for_o a_o surprise_n be_v most_o full_a of_o horror_n and_o of_o more_o certain_a ruin_n so_o that_o we_o have_v no_o security_n but_o a_o perpetual_a observation_n that_o together_o with_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n who_o take_v care_n of_o all_o his_o servant_n and_o will_v drive_v away_o the_o tempter_n when_o he_o please_v and_o help_v we_o always_o when_o we_o need_v be_v as_o great_a a_o argument_n for_o our_o confidence_n and_o encouragement_n to_o our_o prayer_n and_o address_v to_o god_n as_o it_o be_v safety_n to_o our_o person_n and_o honour_n to_o our_o victory_n and_o let_v we_o account_v it_o our_o honour_n that_o the_o trial_n of_o temptation_n which_o be_v the_o great_a sadness_n of_o our_o condition_n be_v hallow_v by_o the_o temptation_n of_o jesus_n and_o our_o condition_n assure_v by_o his_o assistance_n and_o the_o assistance_n procure_v by_o our_o prayer_n most_o easy_o upon_o
they_o deny_v the_o fact_n and_o double_v it_o when_o they_o will_v repair_v their_o loss_n they_o fall_v to_o game_n and_o beside_o that_o they_o be_v infinite_o full_a of_o fear_n passion_n wrath_n and_o violent_a disturbance_n in_o the_o various_a chance_n of_o their_o game_n that_o which_o they_o use_v to_o restore_v their_o 〈◊〉_d ruin_v even_o the_o little_a remnant_n and_o condemn_v they_o to_o beggary_n or_o what_o be_v worse_o thus_o evil_a man_n 〈◊〉_d for_o content_a out_o of_o thing_n that_o can_v satisfy_v and_o take_v care_n to_o get_v that_o content_a that_o be_v they_o raise_v war_n to_o enjoy_v present_a peace_n and_o renounce_v all_o content_a to_o get_v it_o they_o strive_v to_o depress_v their_o neighbour_n that_o they_o may_v be_v their_o equal_n to_o disgrace_v they_o to_o get_v reputation_n to_o themselves_o which_o art_n be_v ignoble_a do_v they_o the_o most_o disparagement_n and_o resolve_v never_o to_o enter_v into_o the_o felicity_n of_o god_n by_o content_n take_v in_o the_o prosperity_n of_o man_n which_o be_v a_o make_v ourselves_o wretched_a by_o be_v wicked_a malice_n and_o envy_n be_v indeed_o a_o mighty_a curse_n and_o the_o devil_n can_v show_v we_o nothing_o more_o foolish_a and_o unreasonable_a than_o envy_n which_o be_v in_o its_o very_a formality_n a_o curse_n a_o eat_n of_o coal_n and_o viper_n because_o my_o neighbour_n table_n be_v full_a and_o his_o cup_n be_v crown_v with_o health_n and_o plenty_n the_o christian_a religion_n as_o it_o choose_v excellent_a end_n so_o it_o use_v proportionate_a and_o apt_a mean_n the_o most_o contradictory_n accident_n in_o the_o world_n when_o it_o become_v hallow_v by_o a_o pious_a and_o christian_a design_n become_v a_o certain_a mean_n of_o felicity_n and_o content_n to_o quit_v our_o land_n for_o christ_n sake_n will_v certain_o make_v we_o rich_a to_o depart_v from_o our_o friend_n will_v increase_v our_o relation_n and_o beneficiaries_n but_o the_o strive_v to_o secure_v our_o temporal_a interest_n by_o any_o other_o mean_n than_o obedient_a action_n or_o obedient_a suffering_n be_v declare_v by_o the_o holy_a jesus_n to_o be_v the_o great_a improvidence_n and_o ill_a husbandry_n in_o the_o world_n even_o in_o this_o world_n christ_n will_v repay_v we_o a_o hundred_o fold_n for_o all_o our_o loss_n which_o we_o suffer_v for_o the_o interest_n of_o christianity_n in_o the_o same_o proportion_n we_o find_v that_o all_o grace_n do_v the_o work_n of_o humane_a felicity_n with_o a_o more_o certain_a power_n and_o 〈◊〉_d effect_v than_o their_o contrary_n gratitude_n endear_v benefit_n and_o procure_v more_o friendship_n confession_n get_v a_o pardon_n impudence_n and_o lie_v double_v the_o fault_n and_o exasperate_v the_o offend_a person_n innocence_n be_v bold_a and_o rock_n a_o man_n asleep_o but_o a_o evil_a conscience_n be_v a_o continual_a alarm_n against_o this_o folly_n of_o use_v disproportionate_a mean_n in_o order_n to_o their_o end_n the_o holy_a jesus_n have_v oppose_v the_o eight_o beatitude_n which_o by_o contradiction_n of_o nature_n and_o improbable_a cause_n according_a to_o humane_a and_o err_a estimate_n bring_v our_o best_a and_o wise_a end_n to_o pass_v infallible_o and_o divine_o 32._o but_o this_o be_v too_o large_a a_o field_n to_o walk_v in_o for_o it_o represent_v all_o the_o flattery_n of_o sin_n to_o be_v a_o mere_a cozenage_n and_o deception_n of_o the_o understanding_n and_o we_o find_v by_o this_o scrutiny_n that_o evil_a and_o unchristian_a person_n be_v infinite_o unwise_a because_o they_o neglect_v the_o counsel_n of_o their_o superior_n and_o their_o guide_n they_o dote_v passionate_o upon_o trifle_n they_o rely_v upon_o false_a foundation_n and_o deceive_a principle_n they_o be_v most_o confident_a when_o they_o be_v most_o abuse_v they_o be_v like_o shell_a fish_n sing_v loud_a when_o their_o house_n be_v on_o fire_n about_o their_o ear_n and_o be_v merry_a when_o they_o be_v most_o miserable_a and_o perish_a when_o they_o have_v the_o option_n of_o two_o thing_n they_o ever_o choose_v the_o worst_a they_o be_v not_o master_n of_o their_o own_o action_n but_o break_v all_o purpose_n at_o the_o first_o temptation_n they_o take_v more_o pain_n to_o do_v themselves_o a_o mischief_n than_o will_v 〈◊〉_d heaven_n that_o be_v they_o be_v rude_a ignorant_a foolish_a unwary_a and_o undiscerning_a people_n in_o all_o sense_n and_o to_o all_o purpose_n and_o be_v incurable_a but_o by_o their_o obedience_n and_o conformity_n to_o the_o holy_a jesus_n the_o eternal_a wisdom_n of_o the_o father_n 33._o upon_o the_o strength_n of_o these_o premise_n the_o yoke_n of_o christianity_n must_v needs_o be_v apprehend_v light_n though_o it_o have_v in_o it_o more_o pressure_n than_o it_o have_v because_o lightness_n or_o heaviness_n be_v relative_a term_n be_v to_o be_v esteem_v by_o comparison_n to_o other_o christianity_n be_v far_o easy_a than_o the_o yoke_n of_o moses_n law_n not_o only_o because_o it_o consist_v of_o few_o rite_n but_o also_o because_o those_o perfect_a and_o excellent_a grace_n which_o integrate_a the_o body_n of_o our_o religion_n be_v make_v easy_a by_o god_n assist_v and_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o we_o may_v yet_o make_v it_o easy_a by_o love_n and_o by_o fear_n which_o be_v the_o proper_a product_n of_o the_o evangelical_n promise_v and_o threaten_n for_o i_o have_v see_v person_n in_o affrightment_n have_v carry_v burden_n and_o leap_v ditch_n and_o climb_v wall_n which_o their_o natural_a power_n can_v never_o have_v do_v and_o if_o we_o understand_v the_o sadness_n of_o a_o curse_a eternity_n from_o which_o we_o be_v command_v to_o fly_v and_o yet_o know_v how_o near_o we_o be_v to_o it_o and_o how_o likely_a to_o fall_v into_o it_o it_o will_v create_v fear_n great_a than_o a_o sudden_a fire_n or_o a_o midnight_n alarm_n and_o those_o unhappy_a soul_n who_o come_v to_o feel_v this_o truth_n when_o their_o condition_n be_v without_o remedy_n be_v make_v the_o more_o miserable_a by_o the_o apprehension_n of_o their_o stupid_a folly_n for_o certain_o the_o accurse_a spirit_n feel_v the_o smart_n of_o hell_n once_o double_v upon_o they_o by_o consider_v by_o what_o vain_a unsatisfy_a trifle_n they_o lose_v their_o happiness_n with_o what_o pain_n they_o perish_v and_o with_o how_o great_a ease_n they_o may_v have_v be_v beatify_v and_o certain_a it_o be_v christian_a religion_n have_v so_o furnish_v we_o with_o assistence_n both_o exterior_a and_o interior_a both_o of_o persuasion_n and_o advantage_n that_o whatsoever_o christ_n have_v double_v upon_o we_o in_o perfection_n he_o have_v alleviate_v in_o aid_n 34._o and_o then_o if_o we_o compare_v the_o state_n of_o christianity_n with_o sin_n all_o the_o precede_a discourse_n be_v intend_v to_o represent_v how_o much_o easy_o it_o be_v to_o be_v a_o christian_n than_o a_o vile_a and_o wicked_a person_n and_o he_o that_o remember_v that_o whatever_o fair_a allurement_n may_v be_v pretend_v as_o invitation_n to_o a_o sin_n be_v such_o false_a and_o unsatisfy_a pretence_n that_o they_o drive_v a_o man_n to_o repent_v he_o of_o his_o folly_n and_o like_o a_o great_a laughter_n end_n in_o a_o sigh_n and_o expire_v in_o weariness_n and_o indignation_n must_v needs_o confess_v himself_o a_o fool_n for_o do_v that_o which_o he_o know_v will_v make_v he_o repent_v that_o he_o ever_o do_v it_o a_o sin_n make_v a_o man_n afraid_a when_o it_o thunder_v and_o in_o all_o danger_n the_o sin_n detract_v the_o visor_n and_o affright_v he_o and_o visit_v he_o when_o he_o come_v to_o die_v upbraid_v he_o with_o guilt_n and_o threaten_a misery_n so_o that_o christianity_n be_v the_o easy_a law_n and_o the_o easy_a state_n it_o be_v more_o perfect_a and_o less_o troublesome_a it_o bring_v we_o to_o felicity_n by_o way_n proportionable_a land_v we_o in_o rest_n by_o easy_a and_o unperplexed_a journey_n this_o discourse_n i_o therefore_o think_v necessary_a because_o it_o reconcile_v our_o religion_n with_o those_o passion_n and_o desire_n which_o be_v common_o make_v the_o instrument_n and_o argument_n of_o sin_n for_o we_o rare_o meet_v with_o such_o spirit_n which_o love_v virtue_n so_o metaphysical_o as_o to_o abstract_n she_o from_o all_o sensible_a and_o delicious_a composition_n and_o love_v the_o purity_n of_o the_o idea_n s._n lewis_n the_o king_n send_v ivo_n bishop_n of_o chartres_n on_o a_o embassy_n and_o he_o tell_v that_o he_o meet_v a_o grave_a matron_n on_o the_o way_n with_o fire_n in_o one_o hand_n and_o water_n in_o the_o other_o and_o observe_v she_o to_o have_v a_o melancholic_a religious_a and_o fantastic_a deportment_n and_o look_n ask_v she_o what_o those_o symbol_n mean_v and_o what_o she_o mean_v to_o do_v with_o her_o fire_n and_o water_n she_o answer_v my_o purpose_n be_v with_o the_o fire_n to_o burn_v paradise_n and_o with_o my_o water_n to_o quench_v
receive_v since_o concern_v not_o i_o to_o inquire_v sect_n viii_o the_o description_n of_o his_o person_n and_o temper_n together_o with_o a_o account_n of_o his_o write_n the_o person_n of_o s._n paul_n describe_v his_o infirm_a constitution_n his_o natural_a endowment_n his_o ingenuous_a education_n and_o admirable_a skill_n in_o humane_a learning_n and_o science_n the_o divine_a temper_n of_o his_o mind_n his_o singular_a humility_n and_o condescension_n his_o temperance_n and_o sobriety_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o world_n whether_o he_o live_v a_o marry_a or_o a_o single_a life_n his_o great_a kindness_n and_o compassion_n his_o charity_n to_o man_n body_n and_o soul_n his_o mighty_a zeal_n for_o religion_n his_o admirable_a industry_n and_o diligence_n in_o his_o office_n his_o unconquerable_a patience_n the_o many_o great_a trouble_n he_o undergo_v his_o constancy_n and_o fidelity_n in_o the_o profession_n of_o christianity_n his_o write_n his_o style_n and_o way_n of_o write_v what_o s._n hierom_n bold_a censure_n of_o it_o the_o perplexedness_n and_o obscurity_n of_o his_o discourse_n whence_o the_o account_n give_v of_o it_o by_o the_o ancient_n the_o order_n of_o his_o epistle_n what_o place_v not_o according_a to_o the_o time_n when_o but_o the_o dignity_n of_o person_n or_o place_n to_o which_o they_o be_v write_v the_o 〈◊〉_d at_o the_o end_n of_o they_o of_o what_o value_n the_o write_n father_v upon_o s._n paul_n his_o 〈◊〉_d a_o three_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o epistle_n to_o the_o laodicean_n his_o 〈◊〉_d his_o acts._n the_o epistle_n between_o he_o and_o seneca_n 1._o though_o we_o have_v draw_v s._n paul_n at_o large_a in_o the_o account_n we_o have_v give_v of_o his_o life_n yet_o may_v it_o be_v of_o use_n to_o represent_v he_o in_o little_a in_o a_o brief_a account_n of_o his_o person_n part_n and_o those_o grace_n and_o virtue_n for_o which_o he_o be_v more_o peculiarly_a eminent_a and_o remarkable_a for_o his_o person_n we_o find_v it_o thus_o 196._o describe_v he_o be_v low_a and_o little_a of_o stature_n and_o somewhat_o stoop_v his_o complexion_n fair_a his_o countenance_n grave_n his_o head_n small_a his_o eye_n carry_v a_o kind_n of_o beauty_n and_o sweetness_n in_o they_o his_o eyebrow_n a_o little_a hang_v over_o his_o nose_n long_o but_o graceful_o bend_v his_o beard_n thick_a and_o like_o the_o hair_n on_o his_o head_n mix_v with_o grey_a hair_n somewhat_o of_o this_o description_n may_v be_v learn_v from_o 999._o lucian_n when_o in_o the_o person_n of_o trypho_n one_o of_o s._n paul_n disciple_n he_o call_v he_o by_o way_n of_o derision_n the_o high-nosed_n bald-pated_a galilean_a that_o be_v catch_v up_o through_o the_o air_n unto_o the_o three_o heaven_n where_o he_o learn_v great_a and_o excellent_a thing_n that_o he_o be_v very_o low_a himself_o plain_o intimate_v when_o he_o tell_v we_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o say_v of_o he_o that_o his_o bodily_a presence_n be_v weak_a and_o his_o speech_n contemptible_a 10._o in_o which_o respect_n he_o be_v style_v by_o 6._o chrysostom_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o man_n three_o cubit_n or_o a_o little_a more_o than_o four_o foot_n high_n and_o yet_o tall_a enough_o to_o reach_v heaven_n he_o seem_v to_o have_v enjoy_v no_o very_a firm_a and_o athletic_a constitution_n be_v often_o subject_a to_o distemper_n 9_o s._n hierom_n particular_o report_v that_o he_o be_v frequent_o afflict_v with_o the_o headache_n and_o that_o this_o be_v think_v by_o many_o to_o have_v be_v the_o thorn_n in_o the_o flesh_n the_o messenger_n of_o satan_n send_v to_o buffet_v he_o and_o that_o probable_o he_o intend_v some_o such_o thing_n by_o the_o temptation_n in_o his_o flesh_n which_o he_o elsewhere_o speak_v of_o which_o however_o it_o may_v in_o 14._o general_n signify_v those_o affliction_n that_o come_v upon_o he_o yet_o do_v it_o primary_o denote_v those_o disease_n and_o infirmity_n that_o he_o be_v obnoxious_a to_o 2._o but_o how_o mean_v soever_o the_o cabinet_n be_v there_o be_v a_o treasure_n within_o more_o precious_a and_o valuable_a as_o will_v appear_v if_o we_o survey_v the_o accomplishment_n of_o his_o mind_n for_o his_o natural_a ability_n and_o endowment_n he_o seem_v to_o have_v have_v a_o clear_a and_o solid_a judgement_n quick_a invention_n a_o prompt_a and_o ready_a memory_n all_o which_o be_v abundant_o improve_v by_o art_n and_o the_o advantage_n of_o a_o more_o liberal_a education_n the_o school_n of_o tarsus_n have_v sharpen_v his_o discursive_a faculty_n by_o logic_n and_o the_o art_n of_o reason_v instruct_v he_o in_o the_o institution_n of_o philosophy_n and_o enrich_v he_o with_o the_o furniture_n of_o all_o kind_n of_o humane_a learning_n this_o give_v he_o great_a advantage_n above_o other_o and_o ever_o raise_v he_o to_o a_o mighty_a reputation_n for_o part_n and_o learning_n insomuch_o that_o 349._o s._n chrysostom_n tell_v we_o of_o a_o dispute_n between_o a_o christian_a and_o a_o heathen_a wherein_o the_o christian_a endeavour_v to_o prove_v against_o the_o gentile_a that_o s._n paul_n be_v more_o learned_a and_o eloquent_a than_o plato_n himself_o how_o well_o he_o be_v verse_v not_o only_o in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o the_o write_n of_o the_o prophet_n but_o even_o in_o classic_a and_o foreign_a writer_n he_o have_v leave_v we_o sufficient_a ground_n to_o conclude_v from_o those_o excellent_a say_n which_o here_o and_o there_o 〈◊〉_d quote_v out_o of_o heathen_a author_n which_o as_o at_o once_o it_o show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o unlawful_a to_o bring_v the_o spoil_n of_o egypt_n into_o the_o service_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n and_o to_o make_v use_n of_o the_o advantage_n 299._o of_o foreign_a study_n and_o humane_a literature_n to_o divine_a and_o excellent_a purpose_n so_o do_v it_o argue_v his_o be_v great_o conversant_a in_o the_o path_n of_o humane_a learning_n which_o upon_o every_o occasion_n he_o can_v so_o ready_o command_v indeed_o he_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v furnish_v out_o on_o purpose_n to_o be_v the_o doctor_n of_o the_o gentile_n to_o contend_v with_o and_o 〈◊〉_d the_o grave_n and_o the_o wise_a the_o acute_a and_o the_o subtle_a the_o sage_a and_o the_o learned_a of_o the_o heathen_a world_n and_o to_o wound_v they_o as_o julian_n word_n be_v with_o arrow_n draw_v out_o of_o their_o own_o quiver_n though_o we_o do_v not_o find_v that_o in_o his_o dispute_n with_o the_o gentile_n he_o make_v much_o use_n of_o learning_n and_o philosophy_n it_o be_v more_o agreeable_a to_o the_o design_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o confound_v the_o wisdom_n and_o learning_n of_o the_o world_n by_o the_o plain_a doctrine_n of_o the_o cross._n 3._o these_o be_v great_a accomplishment_n and_o yet_o but_o a_o shadow_n to_o that_o divine_a temper_n of_o mind_n that_o be_v in_o he_o which_o discover_v itself_o through_o the_o whole_a course_n and_o method_n of_o his_o life_n he_o be_v humble_a to_o the_o low_a step_n of_o abasure_n and_o condescension_n none_o ever_o think_v better_a of_o other_o or_o more_o mean_o of_o himself_o and_o though_o when_o he_o have_v to_o deal_v with_o envious_a and_o malicious_a adversary_n who_o by_o vilify_a his_o person_n seek_v to_o obstruct_v his_o ministry_n he_o know_v how_o to_o magnify_v his_o office_n and_o to_o let_v they_o know_v that_o he_o be_v no_o whit_n inferior_a to_o the_o very_o chief_a apostle_n yet_o out_o of_o this_o case_n he_o constant_o declare_v to_o all_o the_o world_n that_o he_o look_v upon_o himself_o as_o a_o abortive_a and_o a_o untimely_a birth_n as_o the_o least_o of_o the_o apostle_n not_o meet_v to_o be_v call_v a_o apostle_n and_o as_o if_o this_o be_v not_o enough_o he_o make_v a_o word_n on_o purpose_n to_o express_v his_o humility_n still_v himself_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d less_o than_o the_o least_o of_o all_o saint_n yea_o the_o very_a chief_a of_o sinner_n how_o free_o and_o that_o at_o every_o turn_n do_v he_o confess_v what_o he_o be_v before_o his_o conversion_n a_o blasphemer_n a_o persecutor_n and_o injurious_a both_o to_o god_n and_o man_n though_o honour_v with_o peculiar_a act_n of_o the_o high_a grace_n and_o favour_n take_v up_o to_o a_o immediate_a converse_n with_o god_n in_o heaven_n yet_o do_v not_o this_o swell_v he_o with_o a_o supercilious_a lostiness_n over_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o brethren_n entrust_v he_o be_v with_o great_a power_n and_o authority_n in_o the_o church_n but_o never_o affect_v dominion_n over_o man_n faith_n nor_o any_o other_o place_n than_o to_o be_v a_o helper_n of_o their_o joy_n nor_o ever_o make_v use_n of_o his_o power_n but_o to_o the_o edification_n not_o destruction_n of_o any_o how_o studious_o do_v he_o decline_v all_o honour_n and_o commendation_n that_o be_v heap_v upon_o he_o when_o some_o in_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n cry_v he_o up_o beyond_o
death_n but_o he_o die_v and_o rose_z again_o for_o we_o and_o appear_v after_o his_o resurrection_n his_o enemy_n have_v take_v he_o away_o by_o a_o most_o bitter_a and_o cruel_a death_n have_v guard_v and_o secure_v his_o sepulchre_n with_o all_o the_o care_n power_n and_o diligence_n which_o they_o can_v invent_v and_o yet_o he_o rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n in_o triumph_n visible_o converse_v with_o his_o disciple_n for_o forty_o day_n together_o and_o then_o go_v to_o heaven_n by_o which_o he_o give_v the_o most_o solemn_a and_o undeniable_a assurance_n to_o the_o world_n that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o he_o be_v declare_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n 〈◊〉_d with_o power_n by_o the_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o saviour_n of_o mankind_n and_o that_o those_o doctrine_n which_o he_o have_v teach_v be_v most_o true_a and_o do_v real_o contain_v the_o term_n of_o that_o solemn_a transaction_n which_o god_n by_o he_o have_v offer_v to_o man_n in_o order_n to_o their_o eternal_a happiness_n in_o another_o world_n 11._o the_o last_o instance_n i_o shall_v note_v of_o the_o excellency_n of_o this_o above_o the_o moysaicall_a dispensation_n be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d extent_n and_o latitude_n of_o it_o and_o that_o both_o in_o respect_n of_o place_n and_o time_n first_o it_o be_v more_o universal_o extensive_a as_o to_o place_v not_o confine_v as_o the_o former_a be_v to_o a_o small_a part_n of_o mankind_n but_o common_a unto_o all_o heretofore_o in_o judah_n only_o be_v 2._o god_n know_v and_o his_o name_n be_v great_a in_o israel_n he_o show_v his_o word_n unto_o jacob_n his_o statute_n 20._o and_o his_o judgement_n unto_o israel_n but_o he_o do_v not_o deal_v so_o with_o any_o other_o nation_n neither_o have_v the_o heathen_a knowledge_n of_o his_o law_n in_o those_o time_n salvation_n be_v only_o of_o the_o jew_n a_o few_o acre_n of_o land_n like_o gideon_n fleece_n be_v water_v with_o the_o dew_n of_o heaven_n while_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n for_o many_o age_n lay_v dry_a and_o barren_a round_n about_o it_o god_n suffer_v all_o nation_n 16._o in_o time_n past_a to_o walk_v in_o their_o own_o way_n the_o way_n of_o their_o own_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n 13._o be_v alien_n from_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o israel_n stranger_n from_o the_o covenant_n of_o promise_n have_v no_o hope_n and_o without_o god_n in_o the_o world_n that_o be_v they_o be_v without_o those_o promise_n discovery_n and_o declaration_n which_o god_n make_v to_o abraham_n and_o his_o seed_n and_o be_v therefore_o peculiar_o describe_v under_o this_o character_n the_o gentile_n which_o know_v not_o god_n indeed_o 5._o the_o religion_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v in_o itself_o incapable_a to_o be_v extend_v over_o the_o world_n many_o considerable_a part_n of_o it_o as_o sacrifice_n first-fruit_n oblation_n etc._n etc._n call_v by_o the_o jew_n themselves_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d statute_n belong_v to_o that_o land_n be_v to_o be_v perform_v at_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o temple_n which_o can_v not_o be_v do_v by_o those_o nation_n that_o lay_v a_o considerable_a distance_n from_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n they_o have_v its_o true_a now_o and_o then_o some_o few_o proselyte_n of_o the_o gentile_n who_o come_v over_o and_o embody_a themselves_o into_o their_o way_n of_o worship_n but_o then_o they_o either_o reside_v among_o the_o jew_n or_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o vicinity_n to_o judaea_n be_v capable_a to_o make_v their_o personal_a appearance_n and_o to_o comply_v with_o the_o public_a institution_n of_o the_o divine_a law_n other_o proselyte_n they_o have_v call_v proselyte_n of_o the_o gate_n who_o live_v disperse_v in_o all_o country_n who_o the_o jew_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o pious_a of_o the_o nation_n man_n of_o devout_a mind_n and_o religious_a life_n but_o these_o be_v oblige_v to_o no_o more_o than_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o seven_o precept_n of_o the_o son_n of_o noah_n that_o be_v in_o effect_n to_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o natural_a law_n but_o now_o the_o gospel_n have_v a_o much_o wide_a sphere_n to_o move_v in_o as_o vast_a and_o large_a as_o the_o whole_a world_n itself_o it_o be_v communicable_a to_o all_o country_n and_o may_v be_v exercise_v in_o any_o part_n or_o corner_n of_o the_o earth_n our_o lord_n give_v commission_n to_o his_o apostle_n to_o go_v into_o all_o 〈◊〉_d and_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o every_o creature_n and_o so_o they_o do_v 15._o their_o sound_n go_v into_o all_o the_o earth_n and_o their_o 〈◊〉_d unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n by_o which_o 〈◊〉_d 11._o mean_n the_o grace_n of_o god_n that_o bring_v salvation_n appear_v unto_o all_o man_n and_o the_o gospel_n be_v 13._o preach_v to_o every_o creature_n under_o heaven_n so_o that_o now_o there_o be_v neither_o jew_n nor_o greek_a 28._o neither_o bond_n nor_o free_a neither_o male_a nor_o female_a but_o we_o be_v all_o one_o in_o christ_n jesus_n and_o in_o every_o 35._o nation_n he_o that_o fear_v god_n and_o work_v righteousness_n be_v accept_v with_o he_o the_o prophet_n have_v long_o since_o foretell_v it_o of_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n that_o the_o house_n of_o god_n that_o be_v his_o church_n 7._o shall_v be_v call_v a_o house_n of_o prayer_n for_o all_o people_n the_o door_n shall_v be_v open_a and_o none_o exclude_v that_o will_v enter_v in_o and_o the_o divine_a providence_n be_v singular_o remarkable_a in_o this_o affair_n that_o after_o our_o lord_n ascension_n when_o the_o apostle_n be_v go_v upon_o their_o commission_n and_o be_v first_o solemn_o to_o proclaim_v it_o at_o jerusalem_n there_o be_v dwell_v there_o at_o that_o time_n parthian_n mede_n elamites_n etc._n etc._n person_n out_o of_o every_o nation_n under_o heaven_n that_o they_o may_v be_v as_o the_o first-fruit_n of_o those_o several_a country_n which_o be_v to_o be_v gather_v in_o by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v according_o do_v with_o great_a success_n the_o christian_a religion_n in_o a_o few_o year_n spread_v its_o triumphant_a banner_n over_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o then_o know_v world_n 12._o and_o as_o the_o true_a religion_n be_v in_o those_o day_n pen_v up_o within_o one_o particular_a country_n so_o the_o more_o public_a and_o ordinary_a worship_n of_o god_n be_v confine_v only_o to_o one_o particular_a place_n of_o it_o viz._n jerusalem_n hence_o call_v the_o holy_a city_n here_o be_v the_o temple_n here_o the_o priest_n that_o minister_v at_o the_o altar_n here_o all_o the_o more_o public_a solemnity_n of_o divine_a adoration_n thither_o the_o tribe_n go_v up_o the_o tribe_n of_o the_o lord_n unto_o the_o testimony_n of_o israel_n 4._o to_o give_v thanks_o unto_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n now_o this_o be_v not_o the_o least_o part_n of_o the_o bondage_n of_o that_o dispensation_n to_o be_v oblige_v thrice_o every_o year_n to_o take_v such_o long_a and_o tedious_a journey_n many_o of_o the_o jew_n live_v some_o hundred_o of_o miles_n distance_n from_o jerusalem_n and_o so_o strict_o be_v they_o limit_v to_o this_o place_n that_o to_o build_v a_o altar_n and_o offer_v sacrifice_n in_o any_o other_o place_n unless_o in_o a_o case_n or_o two_o wherein_o god_n do_v extraordinary_o dispense_v although_o it_o be_v to_o the_o true_a god_n be_v though_o not_o false_a yet_o unwarrantable_a worship_n for_o which_o reason_n the_o jew_n at_o this_o day_n abstain_v from_o sacrifice_n because_o banish_v from_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o temple_n the_o only_a legal_a place_n of_o offering_n but_o behold_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o this_o case_n we_o be_v not_o tie_v to_o present_v our_o devotion_n at_o jerusalem_n a_o pious_a and_o sincere_a mind_n be_v the_o best_a sacrifice_n that_o we_o can_v offer_v up_o to_o god_n and_o this_o may_v be_v do_v in_o any_o part_n of_o the_o world_n no_o less_o acceptable_o than_o they_o of_o old_a sacrifice_v in_o the_o temple_n the_o hour_n come_v when_o you_o shall_v neither_o in_o this_o mountain_n mount_v gerizim_n nor_o yet_o at_o jerusalem_n worship_v the_o father_n 21-23_a when_o the_o true_a worshipper_n shall_v worship_v the_o father_n in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n as_o our_o lord_n tell_v the_o woman_n of_o samaria_n in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n in_o spirit_n in_o opposition_n to_o that_o carnal_a and_o idolatrous_a 755._o worship_n that_o be_v in_o use_n among_o the_o samaritan_n who_o worship_v god_n under_o the_o representation_n of_o a_o dove_n in_o truth_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o typical_a and_o figurative_a worship_n of_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v but_o a_o shadow_n of_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o great_a sacrifice_n require_v in_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v not_o the_o fat_a of_o beast_n or_o
ascension_n of_o jesus_n p._n 419._o consideration_n upon_o the_o accident_n happen_v in_o the_o interval_n after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o holy_a jesus_n until_o his_o resurrection_n p._n 423._o the_o preface_n 1._o christian_n religion_n have_v so_o many_o exterior_a advantage_n to_o its_o reputation_n and_o advancement_n from_o the_o author_n and_o from_o the_o minister_n from_o the_o fountain_n of_o its_o origination_n and_o the_o channel_n of_o conveyance_n god_n be_v the_o author_n the_o word_n incarnate_a be_v the_o great_a doctor_n and_o preacher_n of_o it_o his_o life_n and_o death_n be_v its_o consignation_n the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v the_o great_a argument_n and_o demonstration_n of_o it_o and_o the_o apostle_n the_o organ_n and_o conduit_n of_o its_o dissemination_n that_o it_o be_v glorious_a beyond_o all_o opposition_n and_o disparagement_n though_o we_o shall_v not_o consider_v the_o excellency_n of_o its_o matter_n and_o the_o certainty_n of_o its_o probation_n and_o the_o efficacy_n of_o its_o power_n and_o the_o perfection_n and_o rare_a accomplishment_n of_o its_o design_n but_o i_o consider_v that_o christianity_n be_v therefore_o very_o little_o understand_v because_o it_o be_v reproach_v upon_o that_o pretence_n which_o its_o very_a be_v and_o design_n do_v infinite_o confute_v it_o be_v esteem_v to_o be_v a_o religion_n contrary_n in_o its_o principle_n or_o in_o its_o precept_n to_o that_o wisdom_n 8._o whereby_o the_o world_n be_v govern_v and_o commonwealth_n increase_v and_o greatness_n be_v acquire_v and_o king_n go_v to_o war_n and_o our_o end_n of_o interest_n be_v serve_v and_o promote_v and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o institution_n so_o whole_o in_o order_n to_o another_o world_n that_o it_o do_v not_o at_o all_o communicate_v with_o this_o neither_o in_o its_o end_n nor_o in_o its_o discourse_n neither_o in_o the_o policy_n nor_o in_o the_o philosophy_n and_o therefore_o as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o cross_n be_v entertain_v at_o first_o in_o scorn_n by_o the_o greek_n in_o offence_n and_o indignation_n by_o the_o jew_n so_o be_v the_o whole_a systeme_n and_o collective_a body_n of_o christian_a philosophy_n esteem_v imprudent_a by_o the_o politic_n of_o the_o world_n and_o flat_a and_o irrational_a by_o some_o man_n of_o excellent_a wit_n and_o submile_v discourse_n who_o because_o the_o permission_n and_o dictate_v of_o natural_a true_a and_o essential_a reason_n be_v at_o no_o hand_n to_o be_v contradict_v by_o any_o superinduce_v discipline_n think_v that_o whatsoever_o seem_v contrary_a to_o their_o reason_n be_v also_o violent_a to_o our_o nature_n and_o offer_v indeed_o a_o good_a to_o we_o but_o by_o way_n unnatural_a and_o unreasonable_a and_o i_o think_v they_o be_v very_o great_a stranger_n to_o the_o present_a affair_n and_o persuasion_n of_o the_o world_n who_o know_v not_o that_o christianity_n be_v very_o much_o undervalue_v upon_o this_o principle_n man_n insensible_o become_v unchristian_a because_o they_o be_v persuade_v that_o much_o of_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o world_n be_v contradict_v by_o the_o religion_n but_o certain_o no_o mistake_n can_v be_v great_a for_o the_o holy_a jesus_n by_o his_o doctrine_n do_v instruct_v the_o understanding_n of_o man_n make_v their_o appetite_n more_o obedient_a their_o reason_n better_a principled_a and_o argumentative_a with_o less_o deception_n their_o will_n apt_a for_o noble_a choice_n their_o government_n more_o prudent_a their_o present_a felicity_n great_a their_o hope_n more_o excellent_a and_o that_o duration_n which_o be_v intend_v to_o they_o by_o their_o creator_n he_o make_v manifest_a to_o be_v a_o state_n of_o glory_n and_o all_o this_o be_v to_o be_v do_v and_o obtain_v respective_o by_o the_o way_n of_o reason_n and_o nature_n such_o as_o god_n give_v to_o man_n then_o when_o at_o first_o he_o design_v he_o to_o a_o noble_a and_o a_o immortal_a condition_n the_o christian_a law_n be_v for_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o nothing_o but_o the_o mat._n restitution_n and_o perfection_n of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o this_o i_o shall_v represent_v in_o all_o the_o part_n of_o its_o natural_a progression_n and_o i_o intend_v it_o not_o only_o as_o a_o preface_n to_o the_o follow_a book_n but_o for_o a_o introduction_n and_o invitation_n to_o the_o whole_a religion_n 2._o for_o god_n when_o he_o make_v the_o first_o emanation_n of_o his_o eternal_a be_v and_o create_v man_n as_o the_o end_n of_o all_o his_o production_n 16._o here_o below_o design_v he_o to_o a_o end_v such_o as_o himself_o be_v please_v to_o choose_v for_o he_o and_o give_v he_o ability_n proportionable_a to_o attain_v that_o end_n god_n give_v man_n a_o reasonable_a and_o a_o intelligent_a nature_n and_o to_o this_o noble_a nature_n he_o design_v as_o noble_a a_o end_n he_o intend_v man_n shall_v live_v well_o and_o happy_o in_o proportion_n to_o his_o appetite_n and_o in_o the_o reasonable_a do_v and_o enjoy_v those_o good_a thing_n which_o god_n make_v he_o natural_o to_o desire_v for_o since_o god_n give_v he_o proper_a and_o peculiar_a appetite_n with_o proportion_n to_o their_o own_o object_n and_o give_v he_o reason_n and_o ability_n not_o only_o to_o perceive_v the_o sapidness_n and_o relish_n of_o those_o object_n but_o also_o to_o make_v reflex_n act_n upon_o such_o perception_n and_o to_o perceive_v that_o he_o do_v perceive_v which_o be_v a_o rare_a instrument_n of_o pleasure_n and_o pain_n respective_o it_o be_v but_o reasonable_a to_o think_v that_o god_n who_o create_v he_o in_o mercy_n do_v not_o only_o proportion_v a_o be_v to_o his_o nature_n but_o do_v also_o provide_v satisfaction_n for_o all_o those_o appetite_n and_o desire_n which_o himself_o have_v create_v and_o put_v into_o he_o for_o if_o he_o have_v not_o than_o the_o be_v of_o a_o man_n have_v be_v nothing_o but_o a_o state_n of_o perpetual_a affliction_n and_o the_o creation_n of_o man_n have_v be_v the_o great_a unmercifulness_n in_o the_o world_n disproportionate_a object_n be_v mere_a instance_n of_o affliction_n and_o those_o unsatisfy_a appetite_n nothing_o else_o but_o instrument_n of_o torment_n 3._o therefore_o that_o this_o intendment_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n shall_v be_v effect_v that_o be_v that_o man_n shall_v become_v happy_a it_o be_v natural_o necessary_a that_o all_o his_o regular_a appetite_n shall_v have_v a_o object_n appoint_v they_o in_o the_o fruition_n of_o which_o felicity_n must_v consist_v because_o nothing_o be_v felicity_n but_o when_o what_o be_v reasonable_o or_o orderly_o desire_v be_v possess_v for_o the_o have_v what_o be_v not_o desire_v or_o the_o want_v of_o what_o we_o desire_v or_o the_o desire_v what_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v the_o several_a constituent_a part_n of_o infelicity_n and_o it_o can_v have_v no_o other_o constitution_n 4._o now_o the_o first_o appetite_n man_n have_v in_o order_n to_o his_o great_a end_n be_v to_o be_v as_o perfect_a as_o he_o can_v that_o be_v to_o be_v as_o like_o c●●●_n the_o best_a thing_n he_o know_v as_o his_o nature_n and_o condition_n will_v permit_v and_o although_o by_o adam_n sancy_n and_o affection_n to_o his_o wife_n and_o by_o god_n appoint_v fruit_n for_o he_o we_o see_v the_o low_a appetite_n be_v first_o provide_v for_o yet_o the_o first_o appetite_n which_o man_n have_v as_o he_o distinguish_v from_o low_a creature_n be_v to_o be_v like_o god_n for_o by_o that_o the_o devil_n tempt_v he_o and_o in_o order_n to_o that_o he_o have_v natural_o sufficient_a instrument_n and_o ability_n for_o although_o by_o be_v abuse_v with_o the_o devil_n sophistry_n he_o choose_v a_o incompetent_a instrument_n yet_o because_o it_o be_v natural_o certain_a that_o love_n be_v the_o great_a assimilation_n of_o the_o object_n and_o the_o faculty_n adam_n by_o love_a god_n may_v very_o well_o approach_v near_o he_o according_o as_o he_o can_v and_o it_o be_v natural_a to_o adam_n to_o love_n god_n who_o be_v his_o father_n his_o creator_n the_o fountain_n of_o all_o good_a to_o he_o and_o of_o excellency_n in_o himself_o and_o whatsoever_o be_v understand_v to_o be_v such_o it_o be_v as_o natural_a for_o we_o to_o love_v and_o we_o do_v it_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n for_o which_o we_o love_v any_o thing_n else_o and_o we_o can_v love_v for_o any_o other_o reason_n but_o for_o one_o or_o both_o these_o in_o their_o proportion_n apprehend_v 5._o but_o because_o god_n be_v not_o only_o excellent_a and_o good_a but_o by_o be_v supreme_a lord_n have_v power_n to_o give_v we_o what_o law_n he_o please_v obedience_n to_o his_o law_n therefore_o become_v natural_o but_o consequent_o necessary_a when_o god_n decree_v they_o because_o he_o do_v make_v himself_o a_o enemy_n to_o all_o rebel_n and_o disobedient_a son_n by_o affix_v penalty_n to_o the_o transgressor_n and_o therefore_o disobedience_n be_v natural_o inconsistent_a not_o only_o with_o love_n to_o ourselves_o
say_v 6._o tacitus_n out_o of_o 〈◊〉_d plato_n who_o word_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v natural_o certain_a that_o the_o cruelty_n of_o tyrant_n torment_n themselves_o and_o be_v a_o hook_n in_o their_o nostril_n and_o a_o 〈◊〉_d scourge_n to_o their_o spirit_n and_o the_o pungency_n of_o forbid_a lust_n be_v true_o a_o thorn_n in_o the_o flesh_n full_a of_o anguish_n and_o secret_a vexation_n quid_fw-la demens_fw-la manifesta_fw-la negas_fw-la en_fw-fr pectus_fw-la inustae_fw-la 1._o deformant_fw-la maculae_fw-la vitiisque_fw-la inolevit_fw-la imago_fw-la say_v claudian_n of_o rusinus_n and_o it_o be_v certain_a to_o we_o and_o verify_v by_o the_o experience_n and_o observation_n of_o all_o wise_a nation_n though_o not_o natural_o demonstrable_a that_o this_o secret_a punishment_n be_v sharpen_v and_o promote_v in_o degree_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o heaven_n the_o finger_n of_o the_o same_o hand_n that_o write_v the_o law_n in_o our_o understanding_n 17._o but_o the_o prevarication_n of_o the_o natural_a law_n have_v also_o their_o portion_n of_o a_o special_a punishment_n beside_o the_o scourge_n of_o a_o unquiet_a spirit_n the_o man_n that_o disturb_v his_o neighbour_n rest_n meet_v with_o disturbance_n himself_o and_o since_o i_o have_v natural_o no_o more_o power_n over_o my_o neighbour_n than_o he_o have_v over_o i_o unless_o he_o descend_v natural_o from_o i_o he_o have_v a_o equal_a privilege_n to_o defend_v himself_o and_o to_o secure_v his_o quiet_a by_o disturb_v the_o order_n of_o my_o happy_a live_n as_o i_o do_v he_o and_o this_o equal_a permission_n be_v certain_o so_o great_a a_o sanction_n and_o signature_n of_o the_o law_n of_o justice_n that_o in_o the_o just_a proportion_n of_o my_o recede_v from_o the_o reasonable_a prosecution_n of_o my_o end_n in_o the_o same_o proportion_n and_o degree_n my_o own_o infelicity_n be_v become_v certain_a and_o this_o in_o several_a degree_n up_o to_o the_o loss_n of_o all_o that_o be_v of_o life_n itself_o for_o where_o no_o far_a duration_n or_o differ_v state_n be_v know_v there_o death_n be_v ordinary_o esteem_v the_o great_a infelicity_n where_o something_o beyond_o it_o be_v know_v there_o also_o it_o be_v know_v that_o such_o prevarication_n make_v that_o far_a duration_n to_o be_v unhappy_a so_o that_o a_o affront_n be_v natural_o punish_v by_o a_o affront_n the_o loss_n of_o a_o tooth_n with_o the_o loss_n of_o a_o tooth_n of_o a_o eye_n with_o a_o eye_n the_o violent_a take_v away_o of_o another_o man_n good_n by_o the_o lose_v my_o own_o for_o i_o be_o liable_a to_o as_o great_a a_o evil_a as_o i_o infer_v and_o natural_o he_o be_v not_o unjust_a that_o inflict_v it_o and_o he_o that_o be_v drink_v be_v a_o fool_n or_o a_o madman_n for_o the_o time_n and_o that_o be_v his_o punishment_n and_o declare_v the_o law_n and_o the_o sin_n and_o so_o in_o proportion_n to_o the_o transgression_n of_o sobriety_n but_o when_o the_o first_o of_o the_o natural_a law_n be_v violate_v that_o be_v god_n be_v disobey_v or_o dishonour_v or_o when_o the_o great_a of_o natural_a evil_n be_v do_v to_o our_o neighbour_n than_o death_n become_v the_o penalty_n to_o the_o first_o in_o the_o first_o period_n of_o the_o world_n to_o the_o second_o at_o the_o restitution_n of_o the_o world_n that_o be_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o second_o period_n he_o that_o do_v attempt_v to_o kill_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o age_n may_v have_v be_v resist_v and_o kill_v if_o the_o assault_v can_v not_o else_o be_v safe_a but_o he_o that_o kill_v actual_o as_o cain_n do_v can_v not_o be_v kill_v himself_o till_o the_o law_n be_v make_v in_o noah_n time_n because_o there_o be_v no_o person_n live_v that_o have_v equal_a power_n on_o he_o and_o have_v be_v natural_o injure_v while_o the_o thing_n be_v do_v the_o assailant_n and_o the_o assail_v have_v equal_a power_n but_o when_o it_o be_v do_v and_o one_o be_v kill_v he_o that_o have_v the_o power_n or_o right_v of_o kill_v his_o murderer_n be_v now_o dead_a and_o his_o power_n be_v extinguish_v with_o the_o man_n but_o after_o the_o flood_n the_o power_n be_v put_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o some_o trust_a person_n who_o be_v to_o take_v the_o forfeiture_n and_o thus_o i_o conceive_v these_o natural_a reason_n in_o order_n to_o their_o proper_a end_n become_v law_n and_o bind_v fast_o by_o the_o band_n of_o annex_v and_o consequent_a penalty_n metum_fw-la prorsus_fw-la &_o noxam_fw-la conscientiae_fw-la pro_fw-la foedere_fw-la haberi_fw-la say_v tacitus_n and_o that_o full_o explain_v my_o sense_n 18._o and_o thus_o death_n be_v bring_v into_o the_o world_n not_o by_o every_o prevarication_n of_o any_o of_o the_o law_n by_o any_o instance_n of_o unreasonableness_n 〈◊〉_d in_o proportion_n to_o the_o evil_a of_o the_o action_n will_v be_v the_o evil_a of_o the_o suffering_n which_o in_o all_o case_n will_v not_o arrive_v at_o death_n as_o every_o injury_n every_o intemperance_n shall_v not_o have_v be_v capital_a but_o some_o thing_n be_v make_v evil_a by_o a_o superinduce_v prohibition_n as_o eat_v one_o kind_n of_o fruit_n some_o thing_n be_v evil_a by_o inordination_n the_o first_o be_v moral_o evil_a the_o second_o be_v evil_a natural_o now_o the_o first_o sort_n bring_v in_o death_n by_o a_o prime_a sanction_n the_o second_o by_o degree_n and_o variety_n of_o accident_n for_o every_o disobedience_n and_o transgression_n of_o that_o law_n which_o god_n make_v as_o the_o instance_n of_o our_o do_v he_o honour_n and_o obedience_n be_v a_o integral_a violation_n of_o all_o the_o band_n between_o he_o and_o we_o it_o do_v not_o grow_v in_o degree_n according_a to_o the_o instance_n and_o subject_a matter_n for_o it_o be_v as_o great_a a_o disobedience_n to_o eat_v when_o he_o have_v forbid_v we_o as_o to_o offer_v to_o climb_v to_o heaven_n with_o a_o ambitious_a tower_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v but_o reasonable_a for_o we_o to_o fear_v and_o just_a in_o he_o to_o make_v we_o at_o once_o suffer_v death_n which_o be_v the_o great_a of_o natural_a evil_n for_o disobey_v he_o to_o which_o death_n we_o may_v arrive_v by_o degree_n in_o do_v action_n against_o the_o reasonableness_n of_o sobriety_n and_o justice_n but_o can_v arrive_v by_o degree_n of_o disobedience_n to_o god_n or_o irreligion_n because_o every_o such_o act_n deserve_v the_o worst_a of_o thing_n but_o the_o other_o natural_o deserve_v no_o great_a evil_n than_o the_o proportion_n of_o their_o own_o inordination_n till_o god_n by_o a_o superinduce_v law_n have_v make_v they_o also_o to_o become_v act_n of_o disobedience_n as_o well_o as_o inordination_n that_o be_v moral_o evil_a as_o well_o as_o natural_o for_o by_o the_o law_n say_v s._n paul_n sin_n become_v exceed_v sinful_a that_o be_v have_v a_o new_a degree_n of_o obliquity_n add_v 13._o to_o it_o but_o this_o be_v not_o at_o first_o for_o therefore_o say_v s._n paul_n before_o 13._o or_o until_o the_o law_n sin_n be_v in_o the_o world_n but_o sin_n be_v not_o impute_v when_o there_o be_v no_o law_n meaning_n that_o those_o sin_n which_o be_v forbid_v by_o moses_n law_n be_v actual_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n and_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o world_n but_o they_o be_v not_o impute_v that_o be_v to_o such_o personal_a punishment_n and_o consequent_a evil_n which_o afterward_o those_o sin_n do_v introduce_v because_o those_o sin_n which_o be_v only_o evil_a by_o inordination_n and_o discomposure_n of_o the_o order_n of_o man_n end_n of_o live_v happy_o be_v make_v unlawful_a upon_o no_o other_o stock_n but_o that_o god_n will_v have_v man_n to_o live_v happy_o and_o therefore_o give_v he_o reason_n to_o effect_v that_o end_n and_o if_o a_o man_n become_v unreasonable_a and_o do_v thing_n contrary_a to_o his_o end_n it_o be_v impossible_a for_o he_o to_o be_v happy_a that_o be_v he_o shall_v be_v miserable_a in_o proportion_n but_o in_o that_o degree_n and_o manner_n of_o evil_n they_o be_v impute_v and_o that_o be_v sanction_n enough_o to_o raise_v natural_a reason_n up_o to_o the_o constitution_n of_o a_o law_n 19_o three_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n be_v thus_o decree_v and_o make_v obligatory_a be_v a_o sufficient_a instrument_n of_o make_v man_n happy_a that_o be_v in_o produce_v the_o end_n of_o his_o creation_n but_o as_o adam_n have_v evil_a discourse_n and_o irregular_a appetite_n before_o he_o fall_v for_o they_o make_v he_o fall_v and_o as_o the_o angel_n who_o have_v no_o original_a sin_n yet_o they_o choose_v evil_a at_o the_o first_o when_o it_o be_v whole_o arbitrary_a in_o they_o to_o do_v so_o or_o otherwise_o so_o do_v man._n god_n make_v man_n upright_o and_o he_o seek_v out_o many_o invention_n some_o man_n be_v ambitious_a and_o by_o incompetent_a mean_n will_v make_v their_o brethren_n to_o be_v their_o
the_o same_o reasonable_a proposition_n into_o other_o nation_n and_o he_o therefore_o multiply_v they_o to_o a_o great_a necessity_n of_o a_o dispersion_n that_o they_o may_v serve_v the_o end_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o natural_a law_n by_o their_o ambulatory_a life_n and_o their_o numerous_a dissemination_n and_o this_o be_v it_o which_o s._n paul_n 〈◊〉_d the_o law_n be_v add_v because_o of_o transgression_n 19_o meaning_n that_o because_o man_n do_v transgress_v the_o natural_a god_n bring_v moses_n law_n into_o the_o world_n to_o be_v as_o a_o strand_n to_o the_o inundation_n of_o impiety_n and_o thus_o the_o world_n stand_v till_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n be_v come_v for_o so_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n the_o law_n be_v add_v because_o of_o transgression_n but_o the_o date_n of_o this_o be_v to_o expire_v at_o a_o certain_a period_n it_o be_v add_v to_o serve_v but_o till_o the_o seed_n shall_v come_v to_o who_o the_o promise_n be_v make_v 23._o for_o because_o moses_n law_n be_v but_o a_o imperfect_a explication_n of_o the_o natural_a there_o be_v divers_a part_n of_o the_o three_o law_n of_o nature_n not_o at_o all_o explicate_v by_o that_o covenant_n not_o the_o religion_n of_o prayer_n not_o the_o reasonableness_n of_o temperance_n and_o sobriety_n in_o opinion_n and_o diet_n and_o in_o the_o more_o noble_a instance_n of_o humanity_n and_o do_v benefit_n it_o be_v so_o short_a that_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v the_o law_n can_v not_o make_v the_o comer_n thereunto_o perfect_a and_o which_o be_v most_o of_o all_o considerable_a it_o be_v confine_v to_o a_o nation_n and_o the_o other_o part_n of_o mankind_n have_v make_v so_o little_a use_n of_o the_o record_n of_o that_o nation_n that_o all_o the_o world_n be_v place_v in_o darkness_n and_o sit_v in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o death_n therefore_o it_o be_v that_o in_o great_a mercy_n god_n send_v his_o son_n a_o light_n to_o lighten_v the_o gentile_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o people_n israel_n to_o instruct_v those_o and_o consummate_v these_o that_o the_o imperfection_n of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o mere_a darkness_n of_o the_o other_o may_v be_v illustrate_v by_o the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n and_o this_o be_v by_o restore_v the_o light_n of_o nature_n which_o they_o by_o evil_a custom_n and_o 〈◊〉_d principle_n and_o evil_a law_n have_v obscure_v by_o restore_v man_n to_o the_o liberty_n of_o his_o spirit_n by_o free_v he_o from_o the_o slavery_n of_o sin_n under_o which_o they_o be_v so_o lose_v and_o oppress_v that_o all_o their_o discourse_n and_o conclusion_n some_o of_o their_o moral_a philosophy_n and_o all_o their_o habitual_a practice_n be_v but_o servant_n of_o sin_n and_o make_v to_o cooperate_v to_o that_o end_n not_o which_o god_n intend_v as_o perfective_a of_o humane_a nature_n but_o which_o the_o devil_n and_o vicious_a person_n superinduce_v to_o serve_v little_a end_n and_o irregular_a and_o to_o destroy_v the_o great_a 24._o for_o certain_a it_o be_v christianity_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o most_o perfect_a design_n that_o ever_o be_v to_o make_v a_o man_n be_v happy_a in_o his_o whole_a capacity_n and_o as_o the_o law_n be_v to_o the_o jew_n so_o be_v philosophy_n to_o the_o gentile_n a_o schoolmaster_n to_o bring_v they_o to_o christ_n to_o teach_v they_o the_o rudiment_n of_o happiness_n and_o the_o first_o and_o low_a thing_n of_o reason_n that_o when_o christ_n be_v come_v all_o mankind_n may_v become_v perfect_a that_o be_v be_v make_v regular_a in_o their_o appetite_n wise_a in_o their_o understanding_n assist_v in_o their_o duty_n direct_v to_o and_o instruct_v in_o their_o great_a ends._n and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o apostle_n call_v be_v perfect_a man_n in_o christ_n jesus_n perfect_v in_o all_o the_o intendment_n of_o nature_n and_o in_o all_o the_o design_n of_o god_n and_o this_o be_v bring_v to_o pass_v by_o discover_v and_o restore_v and_o improve_n the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o by_o turn_v it_o all_o into_o religion_n 25._o for_o the_o natural_a law_n be_v a_o sufficient_a and_o a_o proportionate_a instrument_n and_o mean_n to_o bring_v a_o man_n to_o the_o end_v design_v in_o his_o creation_n and_o this_o law_n be_v eternal_a and_o unalterable_a for_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v as_o last_a and_o as_o unchangeable_a as_o the_o nature_n itself_o so_o long_o as_o it_o be_v capable_a of_o a_o law_n it_o be_v not_o imaginable_a that_o the_o body_n of_o any_o law_n shall_v make_v a_o new_a morality_n new_a rule_n and_o general_a proportion_n either_o of_o justice_n or_o religion_n or_o temperance_n or_o felicity_n the_o essential_a part_n of_o all_o these_o consist_v in_o natural_a proportion_n and_o mean_n towards_o the_o consummation_n of_o man_n last_o end_n which_o be_v first_o intend_v and_o be_v always_o the_o same_o it_o be_v as_o if_o there_o be_v a_o new_a truth_n in_o a_o essential_a and_o a_o necessary_a proposition_n for_o although_o the_o instance_n may_v vary_v there_o can_v be_v no_o new_a justice_n no_o new_a temperance_n no_o new_a relation_n proper_a and_o natural_a relation_n and_o intercourse_n between_o god_n and_o we_o but_o what_o always_o be_v in_o praise_n and_o prayer_n in_o adoration_n and_o honour_n and_o in_o the_o symbolical_a expression_n of_o god_n glory_n and_o our_o need_n 26._o hence_o it_o come_v that_o that_o which_o be_v the_o most_o obvious_a and_o notorious_a appellative_a of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n that_o it_o be_v a_o law_n write_v in_o our_o heart_n be_v also_o recount_v as_o one_o of_o the_o glory_n and_o excellency_n of_o christianity_n plutarch_n say_v that_o king_n ought_v to_o be_v govern_v by_o law_n explain_v himself_o that_o this_o law_n must_v be_v 14._o a_o word_n not_o write_v in_o book_n and_o table_n but_o dwell_v in_o the_o mind_n a_o live_a rule_n the_o 〈◊〉_d guide_v of_o their_o manner_n and_o monitor_n of_o their_o life_n and_o this_o be_v the_o same_o which_o s._n paul_n express_v to_o be_v the_o guide_n of_o the_o gentile_n that_o be_v of_o all_o man_n natural_o the_o gentile_n which_o have_v not_o the_o law_n do_v by_o nature_n the_o thing_n contain_v in_o the_o law_n which_o show_v the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n write_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o that_o we_o may_v see_v it_o be_v the_o law_n of_o nature_n that_o return_v in_o the_o sanction_n of_o christianity_n god_n declare_v that_o in_o the_o constitution_n of_o this_o law_n he_o will_v take_v no_o other_o course_n than_o at_o first_o that_o be_v he_o will_v write_v they_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n indeed_o with_o a_o new_a style_n with_o a_o quill_n take_v from_o the_o wing_n of_o the_o holy_a dove_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v the_o great_a engraver_fw-mi and_o the_o scribe_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n but_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v the_o table_n for_o this_o be_v the_o covenant_n that_o i_o will_v make_v with_o they_o after_o those_o day_n say_v the_o lord_n i_o will_v 17._o put_v my_o law_n into_o their_o heart_n and_o into_o their_o mind_n will_v i_o write_v they_o and_o their_o sin_n and_o their_o iniquity_n will_v i_o remember_v no_o more_o that_o be_v i_o will_v provide_v a_o mean_n to_o expiate_v all_o the_o iniquity_n of_o man_n and_o restore_v he_o to_o the_o condition_n of_o his_o first_o creation_n put_v he_o into_o the_o same_o order_n towards_o felicity_n which_o i_o first_o design_v to_o he_o and_o that_o also_o by_o the_o same_o instrument_n now_o i_o consider_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n take_v very_o great_a care_n that_o all_o the_o record_n of_o the_o law_n of_o jesus_n shall_v be_v careful_o keep_v and_o transmit_v to_o posterity_n in_o book_n and_o sermon_n which_o be_v a_o act_n of_o providence_n and_o mercy_n be_v a_o provision_n lest_o they_o shall_v be_v lose_v or_o mistake_v as_o they_o be_v former_o when_o god_n write_v some_o of_o they_o in_o table_n of_o stone_n for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o son_n of_o israel_n and_o all_o of_o they_o in_o the_o first_o table_n of_o nature_n with_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o creation_n as_o now_o he_o do_v in_o the_o new_a creature_n by_o the_o singer_n of_o the_o spirit_n but_o then_o write_v they_o in_o the_o table_n of_o our_o mind_n beside_o the_o other_o can_v mean_v nothing_o but_o place_v they_o there_o where_o they_o be_v before_o and_o from_o whence_o we_o blot_v they_o by_o the_o mixture_n of_o impure_a principle_n and_o discourse_n but_o i_o descend_v to_o particular_a and_o more_o minute_n consideration_n 27._o the_o law_n of_o nature_n either_o be_v band_n of_o religion_n justice_n or_o sobriety_n now_o i_o consider_v concern_v religion_n that_o whenever_o god_n have_v make_v any_o particular_a precept_n to_o a_o family_n as_o to_o abraham_n or_o
the_o injurious_a if_o i_o be_v not_o judge_v myself_o be_v also_o within_o the_o moderation_n of_o a_o unblameable_a defence_n unless_o some_o accident_n or_o circumstance_n vary_v the_o case_n but_o forgive_a injury_n be_v a_o separate_n the_o malice_n from_o the_o wrong_n the_o transient_a act_n from_o the_o permanent_a effect_n and_o it_o be_v certain_a the_o act_n which_o be_v pass_v can_v be_v rescind_v the_o effect_n may_v and_o if_o it_o can_v it_o do_v no_o way_n alleviate_v the_o evil_n of_o the_o accident_n that_o i_o draw_v he_o that_o cause_v it_o into_o as_o great_a a_o misery_n since_o every_o evil_n happen_v in_o the_o world_n be_v the_o proper_a object_n of_o pity_n which_o be_v in_o some_o sense_n afflictive_a and_o therefore_o unless_o we_o become_v unnatural_a and_o without_o bowel_n it_o be_v most_o unreasonable_a that_o we_o shall_v increase_v our_o own_o affliction_n by_o introduce_v a_o new_a misery_n and_o make_v a_o new_a object_n of_o pity_n all_o the_o end_n of_o humane_a felicity_n be_v secure_v without_o revenge_n for_o without_o it_o we_o be_v permit_v to_o restore_v ourselves_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v against_o natural_a reason_n to_o do_v a_o evil_a that_o no_o way_n cooperate_v towards_o the_o proper_a and_o perfective_a end_n of_o humane_a nature_n and_o he_o be_v a_o miserable_a person_n who_o good_a be_v the_o evil_a of_o his_o neighbour_n and_o he_o that_o revenge_n in_o many_o case_n do_v worse_a than_o he_o that_o do_v the_o injury_n in_o injurid_a all_o case_n as_o bad_a for_o if_o the_o first_o injury_n be_v a_o injustice_n to_o serve_v a_o end_n of_o a_o advantage_n and_o real_a benefit_n than_o menand_n my_o revenge_n which_o be_v abstract_v and_o of_o a_o consideration_n separate_v and_o distinct_a from_o the_o reparation_n be_v worse_a for_o i_o do_v he_o evil_a without_o do_v myself_o any_o real_a good_a which_o he_o do_v not_o for_o he_o receive_v advantage_n by_o it_o but_o if_o the_o first_o injury_n be_v matter_n of_o mere_a malice_n without_o advantage_n yet_o it_o be_v no_o worse_a than_o revenge_n for_o that_o be_v just_a so_o and_o there_o be_v as_o much_o fantastic_a pleasure_n in_o do_v a_o spite_n as_o in_o do_v revenge_n they_o be_v both_o but_o like_o the_o pleasure_n of_o eat_a coal_n and_o toad_n and_o viper_n and_o certain_a it_o be_v if_o a_o man_n upon_o his_o private_a stock_n can_v be_v permit_v to_o revenge_v the_o evil_n will_v be_v immortal_a and_o it_o be_v rare_o well_o discourse_v by_o tyndarus_n in_o euripides_n if_o the_o angry_a wife_n shall_v kill_v her_o husband_n the_o son_n shall_v revenge_v his_o father_n death_n and_o kill_v his_o mother_n and_o then_o the_o brother_n shall_v kill_v his_o mother_n murderer_n and_o he_o also_o will_v meet_v with_o a_o avenger_n for_o kill_v his_o brother_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d orest._n what_o end_n shall_v there_o be_v to_o such_o inhuman_a and_o sad_a accident_n if_o in_o this_o there_o be_v injustice_n it_o be_v against_o natural_a reason_n and_o if_o it_o be_v evil_a and_o disorder_v the_o felicity_n and_o security_n of_o society_n it_o be_v also_o against_o natural_a reason_n but_o if_o it_o be_v just_a it_o be_v a_o strange_a justice_n that_o be_v make_v up_o of_o so_o many_o inhumanities_n 41._o and_o now_o if_o any_o man_n pretend_v special_o to_o reason_n to_o the_o ordinate_a desire_n and_o perfection_n of_o nature_n and_o the_o sober_a discourse_n of_o philosophy_n here_o be_v in_o christianity_n and_o nowhere_o else_o enough_o to_o satisfy_v and_o inform_v his_o reason_n to_o perfect_v his_o nature_n and_o to_o reduce_v to_o act_v all_o the_o proposition_n of_o a_o intelligent_a and_o wise_a spirit_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v promise_v and_o give_v in_o our_o religion_n to_o be_v a_o eternal_a band_n to_o keep_v our_o reason_n from_o return_v to_o the_o darkness_n of_o the_o old_a creation_n and_o to_o promote_v the_o end_n of_o our_o natural_a and_o proper_a felicity_n for_o it_o be_v not_o a_o vain_a thing_n that_o s._n paul_n reckon_v help_n and_o government_n and_o healing_n to_o be_v fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o since_o the_o two_o great_a blessing_n of_o the_o world_n personal_a and_o political_a consist_v that_o in_o health_n this_o in_o 7._o government_n and_o the_o end_n of_o humane_a felicity_n be_v serve_v in_o nothing_o great_a for_o the_o present_a interval_n than_o in_o these_o two_o christ_n do_v not_o only_o enjoin_v rare_a prescription_n of_o health_n such_o as_o be_v fast_v temperance_n chastity_n and_o sobriety_n and_o all_o the_o great_a endearment_n of_o government_n and_o unless_o they_o be_v sacred_o observe_v man_n be_v infinite_o miserable_a but_o also_o have_v give_v his_o spirit_n that_o be_v extraordinary_a aid_n to_o the_o promote_a these_o two_n and_o facilitate_v the_o work_n of_o nature_n that_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v at_o the_o end_n of_o a_o discourse_n to_o this_o very_a purpose_n the_o excellency_n of_o the_o power_n may_v be_v of_o god_n and_o not_o of_o we_o 42._o i_o shall_v add_v nothing_o but_o this_o single_a consideration_n god_n say_v to_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n you_o be_v a_o royal_a priesthood_n a_o kingdom_n of_o priest_n which_o be_v 9_o therefore_o true_a because_o god_n reign_v by_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o priest_n lip_n do_v then_o preserve_v knowledge_n and_o the_o people_n be_v to_o receive_v the_o law_n from_o their_o mouth_n for_o god_n have_v by_o law_n of_o his_o own_o establish_a religion_n and_o the_o republic_n do_v govern_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o priest_n the_o priest_n say_v thus_o say_v the_o lord_n and_o the_o people_n obey_v and_o these_o very_a word_n be_v speak_v to_o the_o christian_a church_n you_o be_v a_o royal_a priesthood_n a_o holy_a nation_n a_o peculiar_a people_n that_o you_o shall_v show_v forth_o the_o praise_n of_o he_o that_o have_v call_v you_o out_o of_o darkness_n into_o his_o marvellous_a light_n that_o be_v god_n reign_v over_o all_o christendom_n just_a as_o he_o do_v over_o the_o jew_n he_o have_v now_o so_o give_v to_o they_o and_o restore_v respective_o all_o those_o reasonable_a law_n which_o be_v in_o order_n to_o all_o good_a end_n personal_a oeconomical_a and_o political_a that_o if_o man_n will_v suffer_v christian_a religion_n to_o do_v its_o last_o intention_n if_o man_n will_v live_v according_a to_o it_o there_o need_v no_o other_o coercion_n of_o law_n or_o power_n of_o the_o sword_n the_o law_n of_o god_n reveal_v by_o christ_n be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v all_o society_n of_o man_n happy_a and_o over_o all_o good_a man_n god_n reign_v by_o his_o minister_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n and_o this_o be_v most_o evident_a in_o the_o three_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n in_o which_o all_o christian_a society_n be_v for_o all_o their_o proper_a intercourse_n perfect_o guide_v not_o by_o the_o authority_n and_o compulsion_n but_o by_o the_o sermon_n of_o their_o spiritual_a guide_n insomuch_o that_o s._n paul_n sharp_o reprehend_v the_o corinthian_n that_o brother_n go_v to_o law_n with_o brother_n and_o that_o before_o the_o unbeliever_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v you_o will_v not_o suffer_v christ_n to_o be_v your_o judge_n and_o his_o law_n to_o be_v your_o rule_n which_o indeed_o be_v a_o great_a fault_n among_o they_o not_o only_o because_o they_o have_v so_o excellent_a a_o law_n so_o clear_o describe_v or_o where_o they_o may_v doubt_v they_o have_v infallible_a interpreter_n so_o reasonable_a and_o profitable_a so_o evident_o concur_v to_o their_o mutual_a felicity_n but_o also_o because_o god_n do_v design_n jesus_n to_o be_v their_o king_n to_o reign_v over_o they_o by_o spiritual_a regiment_n as_o himself_o do_v over_o the_o jew_n till_o they_o choose_v a_o king_n and_o when_o the_o emperor_n become_v christian_a the_o case_n be_v no_o otherwise_o alter_v but_o that_o the_o prince_n themselves_o submit_v to_o christ_n yoke_n be_v as_o all_o other_o christian_n be_v for_o their_o proportion_n to_o be_v govern_v by_o the_o royal_a priesthood_n that_o be_v by_o the_o word_n preach_v by_o apostolical_a person_n the_o political_a interest_n remain_v as_o before_o save_v that_o by_o be_v submit_v to_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n it_o receive_v this_o advantage_n that_o all_o justice_n be_v turn_v to_o be_v religion_n and_o become_v necessary_a and_o bind_v upon_o the_o conscience_n by_o divinity_n and_o when_o it_o happen_v that_o a_o kingdom_n be_v convert_v to_o christianity_n the_o commonwealth_n be_v make_v a_o church_n and_o gentile_a priest_n be_v christian_a bishop_n and_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v servant_n of_o christ_n the_o religion_n of_o the_o nation_n be_v turn_v christian_a and_o the_o law_n of_o the_o nation_n make_v a_o part_n
his_o 9_o 3._o thought_n determinate_a but_o stand_v long_o in_o deliberation_n and_o long_o before_o he_o act_v it_o 7._o because_o it_o be_v a_o invidious_a matter_n and_o a_o rigour_n he_o be_v first_o to_o have_v defame_v and_o accuse_v she_o public_o and_o be_v convict_v by_o the_o law_n she_o be_v to_o die_v if_o he_o have_v go_v the_o ordinary_a way_n but_o he_o who_o be_v a_o just_a man_n that_o be_v according_a to_o the_o style_n of_o scripture_n and_o other_o wise_a writer_n a_o good_a a_o charitable_a man_n find_v that_o it_o be_v more_o agreeable_a to_o justice_n to_o treat_v a_o offend_a person_n with_o the_o easy_a sentence_n than_o to_o put_v thing_n to_o extremity_n and_o render_v the_o person_n desperate_a and_o without_o remedy_n and_o provoke_v by_o the_o suffering_n of_o the_o worst_a of_o what_o she_o can_v fear_v no_o obligation_n to_o justice_n do_v force_v a_o man_n to_o be_v cruel_a or_o to_o use_v the_o sharp_a sentence_n a_o just_a man_n do_v justice_n to_o every_o man_n and_o to_o every_o thing_n and_o then_o if_o he_o be_v also_o wise_a he_o know_v there_o be_v a_o debt_n of_o mercy_n and_o compassion_n due_a to_o the_o infirmity_n of_o a_o man_n nature_n and_o that_o debt_n be_v to_o be_v ambros._n pay_v and_o he_o that_o be_v cruel_a and_o ungentle_a to_o a_o sin_v person_n and_o do_v the_o worst_a thing_n to_o he_o die_v in_o his_o debt_n and_o be_v unjust_a pity_v and_o forbearance_n and_o long-suffering_a and_o fair_a interpretation_n and_o excuse_v our_o brother_n and_o take_v thing_n in_o the_o best_a sense_n and_o pass_v the_o gentle_a sentence_n be_v as_o certain_o our_o duty_n and_o owe_v to_o every_o person_n that_o do_v offend_v and_o can_v repent_v as_o call_v man_n to_o account_n can_v be_v owe_v to_o the_o law_n and_o be_v first_o to_o be_v pay_v and_o he_o that_o do_v not_o so_o be_v a_o unjust_a person_n which_o because_o joseph_n be_v not_o he_o do_v not_o call_v furious_o for_o justice_n or_o pretend_v that_o god_n require_v it_o at_o his_o hand_n present_o to_o undo_v a_o suspect_a person_n but_o wave_v the_o kill_a letter_n of_o the_o law_n and_o secure_v his_o own_o interest_n and_o his_o justice_n too_o by_o intend_v to_o dismiss_v she_o private_o but_o before_o the_o thing_n be_v irremediable_a god_n end_v his_o question_n by_o a_o heavenly_a demonstration_n and_o send_v a_o angel_n to_o reveal_v to_o he_o the_o innocence_n of_o his_o spouse_n and_o the_o divinity_n of_o her_o son_n and_o that_o he_o be_v a_o immediate_a derivative_n from_o heaven_n and_o the_o heir_n of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o in_o all_o our_o doubt_n we_o shall_v have_v a_o resolution_n from_o heaven_n or_o some_o of_o its_o minister_n if_o we_o have_v recourse_n thither_o for_o a_o guide_n and_o be_v not_o hasty_a in_o our_o discourse_n or_o inconsiderate_a in_o our_o purpose_n or_o rash_a in_o judgement_n for_o god_n love_v to_o give_v assistance_n to_o we_o when_o we_o most_o fair_o and_o prudent_o endeavour_v that_o grace_n be_v not_o put_v to_o do_v all_o our_o work_n but_o to_o facilitate_v our_o labour_n not_o create_v new_a faculty_n but_o improve_n those_o of_o nature_n if_o we_o consider_v wary_o god_n will_v guide_v we_o in_o the_o determination_n but_o a_o hasty_a person_n outruns_a his_o guide_n prevaricate_v his_o rule_n and_o very_o often_o engage_v upon_o error_n the_o prayer_n o_o holy_a jesus_n son_n of_o the_o eternal_a god_n thy_o glory_n be_v far_o above_o all_o heaven_n and_o yet_o thou_o do_v descend_v to_o earth_n that_o thy_o descent_n may_v be_v the_o more_o gracious_a by_o how_o much_o thy_o glory_n be_v admirable_a and_o natural_a and_o inseparable_a i_o adore_v thy_o holy_a humanity_n with_o humble_a veneration_n and_o the_o thankful_a address_n of_o religious_a joy_n because_o thou_o have_v personal_o unite_v humane_a nature_n to_o the_o eternal_a word_n carry_v it_o above_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o high_a cherubin_n this_o great_a and_o glorious_a mystery_n be_v the_o honour_n and_o glory_n of_o man_n it_o be_v the_o expectation_n of_o our_o father_n who_o see_v the_o mysteriousness_n of_o thy_o incarnation_n at_o great_a and_o obscure_a distance_n and_o bless_v be_v thy_o name_n that_o thou_o have_v cause_v i_o to_o be_v bear_v after_o the_o fulfil_n of_o thy_o prophecy_n and_o the_o consummation_n and_o exhibition_n of_o so_o great_a a_o love_n so_o great_a mysteriousness_n holy_a jesus_n though_o i_o admire_v and_o adore_v the_o immensity_n of_o thy_o love_n and_o condescension_n who_o be_v please_v to_o undergo_v our_o burden_n and_o infirmity_n for_o we_o yet_o i_o abhor_v myself_o and_o detest_v my_o own_o impurity_n which_o be_v so_o great_a and_o contradictory_n to_o the_o excellency_n of_o god_n that_o to_o destroy_v siam_fw-it and_o save_v we_o it_o become_v necessary_a that_o thou_o shall_v be_v send_v into_o the_o world_n to_o die_v our_o death_n for_o we_o and_o to_o give_v we_o of_o thy_o life_n 2._o dear_a jesus_n thou_o do_v not_o breathe_v one_o sigh_n nor_o shed_v one_o drop_n of_o blood_n nor_o weep_v one_o tear_n nor_o suffer_v one_o stripe_n nor_o preach_v one_o sermon_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o what_o sadness_n and_o shame_n be_v it_o then_o that_o i_o shall_v cause_v so_o many_o insufferable_a load_n of_o sorrow_n to_o fall_v upon_o thy_o sacred_a head_n thou_o be_v whole_o give_v for_o i_o whole_o spend_v upon_o my_o use_n and_o whole_o for_o every_o one_o of_o the_o elect._n thou_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n do_v suffer_v nine_o month_n imprisonment_n in_o the_o pure_a womb_n of_o thy_o holy_a mother_n to_o redeem_v i_o from_o the_o eternal_a servitude_n of_o sin_n and_o its_o miserable_a consequent_n holy_a jesus_n let_v i_o be_v bear_v anew_o receive_v a_o new_a birth_n and_o a_o new_a life_n imitate_v thy_o grace_n and_o excellency_n by_o which_o thou_o be_v belove_v of_o thy_o father_n and_o have_v obtain_v for_o we_o a_o favour_n and_o atonement_n let_v thy_o holy_a will_v be_v do_v by_o i_o let_v all_o thy_o will_n be_v wrought_v in_o i_o let_v thy_o will_v be_v wrought_v concern_v i_o that_o i_o may_v do_v thy_o pleasure_n and_o submit_v to_o the_o dispensation_n of_o thy_o providence_n and_o conform_v to_o thy_o holy_a will_n and_o may_v for_o ever_o serve_v thou_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n in_o the_o society_n of_o thy_o redeem_v one_o now_o and_o in_o the_o glory_n of_o eternity_n amen_n sect_n iii_o the_o nativity_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n jesus_n the_o birth_n of_o lesus_fw-la and_o she_o bring_v forth_o her_o first_o bear_v son_n and_o wrap_v he_o in_o swaddle_a clothes_n and_o lay_v he_o in_o a_o manger_n because_o there_o be_v no_o room_n sor_n they_o in_o the_o inn_n luk._n 2._o 7._o the_o virgin_n mother_n s_o luke_n 11._o 27_o blessed_n be_v the_o womb_n that_o bear_v thou_o and_o the_o pap_n which_o thou_o have_v suck_v v_o 28._o yea_o rather_o bless_a be_v they_o that_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o keep_v it_o 1._o the_o holy_a maid_n long_v to_o be_v a_o glad_a mother_n and_o she_o who_o carry_v a_o burden_n who_o proper_a commensuration_n be_v the_o day_n of_o eternity_n count_v the_o tedious_a minute_n expect_v when_o the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n shall_v break_v forth_o from_o his_o bed_n where_o nine_o month_n he_o hide_v himself_o as_o behind_o a_o fruitful_a cloud_n about_o the_o same_o time_n god_n who_o in_o his_o infinite_a wisdom_n do_v concentre_v and_o tie_v together_o in_o one_o end_n thing_n of_o disparate_a and_o disproportionate_a nature_n make_v thing_n improbable_a to_o cooperate_v to_o what_o wonder_n or_o to_o what_o truth_n he_o please_v bring_v the_o holy_a virgin_n to_o bethlehem_n the_o city_n of_o david_n to_o be_v tax_v with_o her_o husband_n joseph_n according_a to_o a_o decree_n upon_o all_o the_o world_n issue_v from_o augustus_n caesar._n coss._n but_o this_o happen_v in_o this_o conjunction_n of_o time_n that_o it_o may_v be_v fulfil_v which_o be_v speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n micah_n and_o thou_o bethlehem_n in_o the_o land_n of_o judah_n be_v not_o the_o least_o among_o the_o prince_n of_o judah_n for_o out_o of_o thou_o shall_v come_v a_o governor_n that_o shall_v rule_v my_o people_n israel_n this_o rare_a act_n of_o providence_n be_v high_o remarkable_a because_o this_o tax_v seem_v whole_o to_o have_v be_v order_v by_o god_n to_o serve_v and_o minister_v matth._n to_o the_o circumstance_n of_o this_o birth_n for_o this_o tax_v be_v not_o in_o order_n to_o tribute_n herod_n be_v now_o king_n and_o receive_v all_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o fiscus_n and_o pay_v to_o augustus_n a_o appoint_a tribute_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o other_o king_n friend_n and_o
look_v upon_o my_o misery_n thy_o holy_a hand_n be_v stretch_v out_o to_o my_o relief_n and_o succour_n let_v some_o of_o those_o precious_a distil_a tear_n which_o nature_n and_o thy_o compassion_n and_o thy_o suffering_n do_v cause_n to_o distil_v and_o drop_v from_o those_o sacred_a fontinell_n water_n my_o stony_a heart_n and_o make_v it_o soft_a apt_a for_o the_o impression_n of_o a_o melt_a obedient_a and_o correspond_v love_n and_o moisten_v my_o eye_n that_o i_o may_v upon_o thy_o stock_n of_o pity_n and_o weep_a mourn_n for_o my_o sin_n that_o so_o my_o tear_n and_o sorrow_n be_v drop_n of_o water_n come_v from_o that_o holy_a rock_n may_v indeed_o be_v unite_v unto_o thou_o and_o make_v precious_a by_o such_o holy_a mixture_n amen_n 3._o bless_a jesus_n now_o that_o thou_o have_v sanctify_v and_o exalt_v humane_a nature_n and_o make_v even_o my_o body_n precious_a by_o a_o personal_a unite_n it_o to_o the_o divinity_n teach_v i_o so_o reverent_o to_o account_v of_o it_o that_o i_o may_v not_o dare_v to_o profane_v it_o with_o impure_a lust_n or_o caitive_a affection_n and_o unhallow_a that_o ground_n where_o thy_o holy_a foot_n have_v tread_v give_v to_o i_o ardent_a desire_n and_o efficacious_a prosecution_n of_o these_o holy_a effect_n which_o thou_o do_v design_n for_o we_o in_o thy_o nativity_n and_o other_o part_n of_o our_o redemption_n give_v i_o great_a confidence_n in_o thou_o which_o thou_o have_v encourage_v by_o the_o exhibition_n of_o so_o glorious_a favour_n great_a sorrow_n and_o confusion_n of_o face_n at_o the_o sight_n of_o my_o own_o imperfection_n and_o estrangement_n and_o great_a distance_n from_o thou_o and_o the_o perfection_n of_o thy_o soul_n and_o bring_v i_o to_o thou_o by_o the_o strictness_n of_o a_o zealous_a and_o affectionate_a imitation_n of_o those_o sanctity_n which_o next_o to_o the_o hypostatical_a union_n add_v lustre_n and_o excellency_n to_o thy_o humanity_n that_o i_o may_v live_v here_o with_o thou_o in_o the_o express_v of_o a_o holy_a life_n and_o die_v with_o thou_o by_o mortification_n and_o a_o unwearied_a patience_n and_o reign_v with_o thou_o in_o immortal_a glory_n world_n without_o end_n amen_n discourse_n i._o of_o nurse_n child_n in_o imitation_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin-mother_n 1._o these_o late_a age_n of_o the_o world_n have_v decline_v into_o a_o softness_n above_o the_o effeminacy_n of_o asian_a prince_n and_o have_v contract_v custom_n which_o those_o innocent_a and_o healthful_a day_n of_o our_o ancestor_n know_v not_o who_o piety_n be_v natural_a who_o charity_n be_v operative_a who_o policy_n be_v just_a and_o valiant_a and_o who_o oeconomy_n be_v sincere_a and_o proportionable_a to_o the_o disposition_n and_o requisite_n of_o nature_n and_o in_o this_o particular_a the_o good_a woman_n of_o 2._o old_a give_v one_o of_o their_o instance_n the_o great_a personage_n nurse_v their_o own_o child_n do_v the_o work_n of_o mother_n and_o think_v it_o be_v unlikely_a woman_n shall_v become_v virtuous_a by_o ornament_n and_o superaddition_n of_o morality_n who_o do_v decline_v the_o law_n and_o prescription_n of_o nature_n who_o principle_n supply_v we_o with_o the_o first_o and_o most_o common_a rule_n of_o manner_n and_o more_o perfect_a action_n in_o imitation_n of_o who_o and_o especial_o of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n who_o be_v mother_n and_o nurse_n to_o the_o holy_a jesus_n i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o correct_v those_o softness_n and_o unnatural_a rejection_n of_o child_n which_o be_v popular_a up_o to_o a_o custom_n and_o fashion_n even_o where_o no_o necessity_n of_o nature_n or_o just_a reason_n can_v make_v excuse_n 2._o and_o i_o can_v think_v the_o question_n despicable_a and_o the_o duty_n of_o mean_a consideration_n although_o it_o be_v specify_v in_o a_o office_n of_o small_a esteem_n and_o suggest_v to_o we_o by_o the_o principle_n of_o reason_n and_o not_o by_o express_a sanction_n of_o divinity_n for_o although_o other_o action_n be_v more_o perfect_a and_o spiritual_a yet_o this_o be_v more_o natural_a and_o humane_a other_o thing_n be_v superad_v to_o a_o full_a duty_n rise_v high_a but_o this_o build_v strong_a and_o be_v like_o a_o part_n of_o the_o foundation_n have_v no_o lustre_n but_o much_o strength_n and_o however_o the_o other_o be_v full_a of_o ornament_n yet_o this_o have_v in_o it_o some_o degree_n of_o necessity_n and_o possible_o be_v with_o more_o danger_n and_o irregularity_n omit_v than_o action_n which_o spread_v their_o leaf_n fair_a and_o look_v more_o glorious_o 3._o first_o here_o i_o consider_v that_o there_o be_v many_o sin_n in_o the_o scene_n of_o the_o body_n and_o the_o matter_n of_o sobriety_n which_o be_v high_o criminal_a and_o yet_o the_o law_n of_o god_n express_v in_o scripture_n name_v they_o not_o but_o man_n be_v teach_v to_o distinguish_v they_o by_o that_o reason_n which_o be_v give_v we_o by_o nature_n and_o be_v imprint_v in_o our_o understanding_n in_o order_n to_o the_o conservation_n of_o humane_a kind_n for_o since_o every_o creature_n have_v something_o in_o it_o sufficient_a to_o propagate_v the_o kind_n and_o to_o conserve_v the_o individual_n from_o perish_v in_o confusion_n and_o general_a disorder_n which_o in_o beast_n we_o call_v instinct_n that_o be_v a_o habitual_a or_o prime_a disposition_n to_o do_v certain_a thing_n which_o be_v proportionable_a to_o the_o end_n whither_o it_o be_v design_v man_n also_o if_o he_o be_v not_o more_o imperfect_a must_v have_v the_o like_a and_o because_o he_o know_v and_o make_v reflection_n upon_o his_o own_o act_n and_o understand_v the_o reason_n of_o it_o that_o which_o in_o they_o be_v instinct_n in_o he_o be_v natural_a reason_n which_o be_v a_o desire_n to_o preserve_v himself_o and_o his_o 10._o own_o kind_n and_o differ_v from_o instinct_n because_o he_o understand_v his_o instinct_n and_o the_o reasonableness_n of_o it_o and_o they_o do_v not_o but_o man_n be_v a_o high_a thing_n even_o in_o the_o order_n of_o creation_n and_o design_v to_o a_o more_o noble_a end_n in_o his_o animal_n capacity_n his_o argumentative_a instinct_n be_v large_a than_o the_o natural_a instinct_n of_o beast_n for_o he_o have_v instinct_n in_o he_o in_o order_n to_o the_o conservation_n of_o society_n and_o therefore_o have_v principle_n that_o be_v he_o have_v natural_a desire_n to_o it_o for_o his_o own_o good_a and_o because_o he_o understand_v they_o they_o be_v call_v principle_n and_o law_n of_o nature_n but_o be_v no_o other_o than_o what_o i_o have_v now_o declare_v for_o beast_n do_v the_o same_o thing_n we_o do_v and_o have_v many_o the_o same_o inclination_n which_o in_o we_o be_v the_o law_n of_o nature_n even_o all_o which_o we_o have_v in_o order_n to_o our_o common_a end_n but_o that_o which_o in_o beast_n be_v nature_n and_o a_o impulsive_a force_n in_o we_o must_v be_v duty_n and_o a_o invite_a power_n we_o must_v do_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o a_o actual_a or_o habitual_a designation_n of_o that_o end_n to_o which_o god_n design_n beast_n supply_v by_o his_o wisdom_n their_o want_n of_o understanding_n and_o than_o what_o be_v mere_a nature_n in_o they_o in_o we_o be_v natural_a reason_n and_o therefore_o marriage_n in_o man_n be_v make_v sacred_a when_o the_o mixture_n of_o other_o creature_n be_v so_o mere_o natural_a that_o they_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o be_v virtuous_a because_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o intend_v that_o end_n which_o god_n make_v and_o this_o with_o the_o superaddition_n of_o other_o end_n of_o which_o marriage_n be_v representative_a in_o part_n and_o in_o part_n effective_a do_v consecrate_v marriage_n and_o make_v it_o holy_a and_o mysterious_a but_o then_o there_o be_v in_o marriage_n many_o duty_n which_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o instinct_n that_o be_v by_o that_o reason_n whereby_o we_o understand_v what_o be_v the_o best_a mean_n to_o promote_v the_o end_n which_o we_o have_v assign_v we_o and_o by_o these_o law_n all_o unnatural_a mixture_n be_v make_v unlawful_a and_o the_o decency_n which_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v in_o marriage_n be_v prescribe_v we_o by_o this_o 4._o second_o upon_o the_o supposition_n of_o this_o discourse_n i_o consider_v again_o that_o although_o to_o observe_v this_o instinct_n or_o these_o law_n of_o nature_n in_o which_o i_o now_o have_v instance_a be_v no_o great_a virtue_n in_o any_o eminency_n of_o degree_n as_o no_o man_n be_v much_o commend_v for_o not_o kill_v himself_o or_o for_o not_o degenerate_v into_o beastly_a lust_n yet_o to_o prevaricate_v some_o of_o these_o law_n may_v become_v almost_o the_o great_a sin_n in_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o although_o to_o live_v according_a to_o nature_n be_v a_o testimony_n fit_a to_o give_v to_o a_o sober_a and_o a_o temperate_a man_n and_o rises_z no_o high_o yet_o to_o do_v a_o action_n against_o nature_n be_v the_o great_a
the_o whole_a body_n of_o sin_n and_o to_o destroy_v every_o province_n of_o satan_n kingdom_n for_o these_o be_v direct_a antinomy_n to_o the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n the_o last_o of_o the_o eye_n and_o the_o pride_n of_o life_n against_o the_o first_o christ_n oppose_v his_o hard_a and_o uneasy_a lodging_n against_o the_o second_o the_o poorness_n of_o his_o swadling-band_n and_o mantle_n and_o the_o three_o be_v combat_v by_o the_o great_a dignation_n and_o descent_n of_o christ_n from_o a_o throne_n of_o majesty_n to_o the_o state_n of_o a_o suck_a babe_n and_o these_o be_v the_o first_o lesson_n he_o have_v teach_v we_o for_o our_o imitation_n which_o that_o we_o may_v the_o better_a do_v as_o we_o must_v take_v he_o for_o our_o pattern_n so_o also_o for_o our_o helper_n and_o pray_v to_o the_o holy_a child_n and_o he_o will_v not_o only_o teach_v we_o but_o also_o give_v we_o power_n and_o ability_n the_o prayer_n o_o bless_a and_o eternal_a jesus_n at_o who_o birth_n the_o quire_n of_o angel_n sing_v praise_n to_o god_n and_o proclaim_v peace_n to_o man_n sanctify_v my_o will_n and_o inferior_a affection_n make_v i_o to_o be_v within_o the_o condition_n of_o peace_n that_o i_o be_v holy_a and_o mortify_a a_o despiser_n of_o the_o world_n and_o exterior_a vanity_n humble_a and_o charitable_a that_o by_o thy_o eminent_a example_n i_o may_v be_v so_o fix_v in_o the_o design_n and_o prosecution_n of_o the_o end_n of_o god_n and_o a_o blissful_a eternity_n that_o i_o be_v unmoved_a with_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o world_n unaltered_a with_o its_o allurement_n and_o seduction_n not_o ambitious_a of_o its_o honour_n not_o desirous_a of_o its_o fullness_n and_o plenty_n but_o make_v i_o diligent_a in_o the_o employment_n thou_o give_v i_o faithful_a in_o discharge_n of_o my_o trust_n modest_a in_o my_o desire_n content_a in_o the_o issue_n of_o thy_o providence_n that_o in_o such_o disposition_n i_o may_v receive_v and_o entertain_v visitation_n from_o heaven_n and_o revelation_n of_o the_o mystery_n and_o bliss_n evangelical_n that_o by_o such_o direction_n i_o may_v be_v bring_v into_o thy_o presence_n there_o to_o see_v thy_o beauty_n and_o admire_v thy_o grace_n and_o imitate_v all_o thy_o imitable_a excellency_n and_o rest_n in_o thou_o for_o ever_o in_o this_o world_n by_o the_o perseverance_n of_o a_o holy_a and_o comfortable_a life_n and_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v in_o the_o participation_n of_o thy_o essential_a glory_n and_o felicity_n o_o bless_a and_o eternal_a jesus_n consideration_n of_o the_o epiphany_n of_o the_o b._n jesus_n by_o a_o star_n and_o the_o adoration_n of_o jesus_n by_o the_o eastern_a magi._n 1._o god_n who_o be_v the_o universal_a father_n of_o all_o man_n at_o the_o nativity_n of_o the_o messiah_n give_v notice_n of_o it_o to_o all_o the_o world_n as_o they_o be_v represent_v by_o the_o grand_a division_n of_o jew_n and_o gentile_n to_o the_o jewish_a shepherd_n by_o a_o angel_n to_o the_o eastern_a magi_n by_o a_o star_n for_o the_o gospel_n be_v of_o universal_a dissemination_n not_o confine_v within_o the_o limit_n of_o a_o national_a prerogative_n but_o catholic_n and_o diffuse_a as_o god_n love_n be_v so_o be_v the_o dispensation_n of_o it_o without_o respect_n of_o person_n for_o all_o be_v include_v under_o the_o curse_n of_o sin_n be_v to_o he_o equal_a and_o indifferent_a undistinguishable_a object_n of_o mercy_n and_o jesus_n descend_v of_o the_o jew_n be_v also_o the_o expectation_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o therefore_o communicate_v to_o all_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v like_o the_o air_n we_o breathe_v and_o it_o have_v 11._o appear_v to_o all_o man_n say_v s._n paul_n but_o the_o conveyance_n and_o communication_n of_o it_o be_v different_a in_o the_o degree_n of_o clarity_n and_o illustration_n the_o angel_n tell_v the_o shepherd_n the_o story_n of_o the_o nativity_n plain_o and_o literal_o the_o star_n invite_v the_o wise_a man_n by_o its_o rareness_n and_o preternatural_a apparition_n to_o which_o also_o as_o by_o a_o footpath_n they_o have_v be_v lead_v by_o the_o prophecy_n of_o balaam_n 2._o but_o here_o first_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n prevent_v we_o without_o he_o we_o can_v do_v nothing_o he_o lay_v the_o first_o stone_n in_o every_o spiritual_a building_n and_o then_o expect_v by_o that_o strength_n he_o first_o give_v we_o that_o we_o make_v the_o superstructure_n but_o as_o a_o stone_n throw_v into_o a_o river_n first_o move_v the_o water_n and_o disturb_v its_o surface_n into_o a_o circle_n and_o then_o its_o own_o force_n waft_v the_o neighbour_a drop_n into_o a_o large_a figure_n by_o its_o proper_a weight_n so_o be_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n the_o first_o principle_n of_o our_o spiritual_a motion_n and_o when_o it_o move_v we_o into_o its_o own_o figure_n and_o have_v actuate_v and_o ennoble_v our_o natural_a power_n by_o the_o influence_n of_o that_o first_o incentive_a we_o continue_v the_o motion_n and_o enlarge_v the_o progress_n but_o as_o the_o circle_n on_o the_o face_n of_o the_o water_n grow_v weak_a till_o it_o have_v smooth_v itself_o into_o a_o natural_a and_o even_a current_n unless_o the_o force_n be_v renew_v or_o continue_v so_o do_v all_o our_o natural_a endeavour_n when_o first_o set_v a-work_o by_o god_n prevent_a grace_n decline_v to_o the_o imperfection_n of_o its_o own_o kind_n unless_o the_o same_o force_n be_v make_v energetical_a and_o operative_a by_o the_o continuation_n and_o renew_n of_o the_o same_o supernatural_a influence_n 3._o and_o therefore_o the_o eastern_a magi_n be_v first_o raise_v up_o into_o wonder_n and_o curiosity_n by_o the_o apparition_n of_o the_o star_n be_v very_o far_o from_o find_v jesus_n by_o such_o general_a and_o indefinite_a signification_n but_o then_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n grace_n increase_v its_o own_o influence_n 〈◊〉_d for_o a_o inspiration_n from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n admonish_v they_o to_o observe_v the_o star_n show_v the_o star_n that_o they_o may_v find_v it_o teach_v they_o to_o acknowledge_v it_o instruct_v they_o to_o understand_v its_o purpose_n and_o invite_v they_o to_o follow_v it_o and_o never_o leave_v they_o till_o they_o have_v find_v the_o holy_a jesus_n thus_o also_o god_n deal_v with_o we_o he_o give_v we_o the_o first_o grace_n and_o add_v the_o second_o he_o enlighten_v our_o understanding_n and_o actuate_v our_o faculty_n and_o sweet_o allure_v we_o by_o the_o proposition_n of_o reward_n and_o wound_v we_o with_o the_o arrow_n of_o his_o love_n and_o inflame_v we_o with_o fire_n from_o heaven_n ever_o give_v we_o new_a assistance_n or_o increase_v the_o old_a refresh_v we_o with_o comfort_n or_o arm_v we_o with_o patience_n sometime_o stir_v our_o affection_n by_o the_o light_n hold_v out_o to_o our_o understanding_n sometime_o bring_v confirmation_n to_o our_o understanding_n by_o the_o motion_n of_o our_o affection_n till_o by_o variety_n of_o mean_n we_o at_o last_o arrive_v at_o lethlehem_n in_o the_o service_n and_o entertainment_n of_o the_o holy_a jesus_n which_o we_o shall_v certain_o do_v if_o we_o follow_v the_o invitation_n of_o grace_n and_o exterior_a assistance_n which_o be_v give_v we_o to_o instruct_v we_o to_o help_v we_o and_o to_o invite_v we_o but_o not_o to_o force_v our_o endeavour_n and_o cooperation_n 4._o as_o it_o be_v a_o unsearchable_a wisdom_n so_o it_o be_v a_o unmeasurable_a grace_n of_o providence_n and_o dispensation_n which_o god_n do_v exhibit_v to_o the_o wise_a man_n to_o they_o as_o to_o all_o man_n dispose_v the_o ministery_n of_o his_o grace_n sweet_o and_o by_o proportion_n to_o the_o capacity_n of_o the_o person_n suscipient_fw-la for_o god_n call_v the_o gentile_n by_o such_o mean_n which_o their_o custom_n and_o learning_n have_v make_v prompt_a and_o easy_a for_o these_o magi_n be_v great_a philosopher_n and_o astronomer_n and_o therefore_o god_n send_v a_o miraculous_a star_n to_o invite_v and_o lead_v they_o to_o a_o new_a and_o more_o glorious_a light_n the_o light_n of_o grace_n and_o glory_n and_o god_n so_o bless_v they_o in_o follow_v the_o star_n to_o which_o their_o innocent_a curiosity_n and_o national_a custom_n be_v apt_a to_o lead_v they_o that_o their_o custom_n be_v change_v to_o grace_n and_o their_o learning_n heighten_v with_o inspiration_n and_o god_n crown_v all_o with_o a_o spiritual_a and_o glorious_a event_n it_o be_v not_o much_o unlike_a which_o god_n do_v to_o the_o prince_n and_o diviner_n among_o the_o philistine_n who_o send_v the_o ark_n back_o with_o five_o golden_a emrods_z and_o five_o golden_a mouse_n a_o act_n proportionable_a to_o the_o custom_n and_o sense_n of_o their_o nation_n and_o religion_n yet_o god_n accept_v their_o opinion_n and_o divination_n to_o the_o utmost_a end_n they_o design_v it_o and_o take_v the_o plague_n of_o emrods_z and_o mouse_n from_o they_o for_o
will_v not_o be_v stop_v by_o purpose_n and_o easy_a desire_n 13._o since_o therefore_o the_o body_n be_v the_o instrument_n of_o sin_n the_o fuel_n and_o the_o incentive_a our_o mortification_n must_v reach_v thither_o also_o at_o least_o in_o some_o degree_n or_o it_o will_v be_v to_o small_a purpose_n to_o think_v of_o mortify_v our_o spirit_n in_o some_o instance_n of_o temptation_n in_o vain_a do_v that_o man_n think_v to_o keep_v his_o honour_n and_o chastity_n that_o invite_v his_o lust_n to_o a_o activeness_n by_o soft_a bed_n and_o high_a diet_n and_o idleness_n and_o opportunity_n make_v the_o soul_n instrument_n unapt_a and_o half_a the_o work_n be_v do_v and_o this_o be_v true_a in_o all_o instance_n of_o carnality_n or_o natural_a desire_n who_o scene_n lie_v in_o the_o low_a region_n of_o passion_n and_o be_v act_v by_o the_o body_n but_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o cure_n must_v be_v in_o proportion_n to_o the_o design_n as_o the_o mortification_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v in_o several_a degree_n so_o the_o mortification_n of_o the_o body_n also_o have_v its_o several_a part_n of_o prudence_n injunction_n and_o necessity_n for_o the_o prescribe_v all_o sort_n of_o mortification_n corporal_a indefinite_o and_o indiseriminate_o to_o all_o person_n without_o separation_n of_o their_o end_n and_o distinct_a capacity_n be_v a_o snare_n to_o man_n conscience_n make_v religion_n impertinent_o troublesome_a occasion_n some_o man_n to_o glory_n in_o corporal_a austerity_n as_o if_o of_o itself_o it_o be_v a_o act_n of_o piety_n and_o a_o distinction_n of_o the_o man_n from_o the_o more_o imperfect_a person_n of_o the_o world_n and_o be_v all_o the_o way_n unreasonable_a and_o inartificial_a 14._o first_o therefore_o such_o who_o engagement_n in_o the_o world_n or_o capacity_n of_o person_n confine_v they_o to_o the_o low_a and_o first_o step_n 〈◊〉_d of_o mortification_n those_o who_o fight_v only_o for_o life_n and_o liberty_n not_o for_o privilege_n and_o honour_n that_o be_v in_o perpetual_a contestation_n and_o close_a fight_n with_o sin_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o their_o body_n also_o 〈…〉_z be_v mortify_v in_o such_o a_o degree_n that_o their_o desire_n transport_v they_o not_o beyond_o the_o permission_n of_o divine_a and_o humane_a law_n let_v such_o man_n be_v strict_a in_o the_o rule_n of_o temperance_n and_o sobriety_n be_v chaste_a within_o the_o law_n of_o marriage_n cherish_v their_o body_n to_o preserve_v their_o health_n and_o their_o health_n to_o serve_v god_n and_o to_o do_v their_o office_n to_o these_o person_n the_o best_a instrument_n of_o discipline_n be_v the_o strict_a law_n of_o temperance_n deny_v all_o transgression_n of_o the_o appetite_n boil_v over_o its_o margin_n and_o proper_a limit_n assiduous_a prayer_n and_o observation_n of_o the_o public_a law_n of_o 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v frame_v so_o moderate_a and_o even_a as_o to_o be_v proportionable_a to_o the_o common_a manner_n of_o live_v of_o person_n secular_a and_o encumber_v for_o though_o many_o person_n of_o common_a employment_n and_o even_a manner_n of_o live_v have_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o worldly_a avocation_n undertake_v austerity_n very_o rude_a and_o rigorous_a yet_o it_o be_v in_o order_n to_o a_o high_a mortification_n of_o spirit_n and_o it_o be_v also_o necessary_a they_o shall_v if_o either_o natural_o or_o habitual_o or_o easy_o they_o suffer_v violent_a transportation_n of_o passion_n for_o since_o the_o occasion_n of_o anger_n and_o disturbance_n in_o the_o world_n frequent_o occur_v if_o such_o passion_n be_v not_o restrain_v by_o great_a violence_n than_o be_v competent_a to_o the_o ordinary_a office_n of_o a_o moderate_a piety_n the_o cure_n be_v weak_a than_o the_o humour_n and_o so_o leave_v the_o work_n imperfect_a 15._o second_o but_o this_o be_v coincident_a to_o the_o second_o degree_n of_o mortification_n for_o if_o either_o out_o of_o desire_n of_o a_o far_a step_n towards_o perfection_n or_o out_o of_o the_o necessity_n of_o nature_n or_o evil_a custom_n it_o be_v necessary_a also_o to_o subdue_v our_o passion_n as_o well_o as_o the_o direct_a invitation_n to_o sin_n in_o both_o these_o case_n the_o body_n must_v suffer_v more_o austerity_n even_o such_o as_o direct_o be_v contrariant_n to_o every_o passionate_a disturbance_n though_o it_o be_v not_o ever_o sinful_a in_o the_o instance_n all_o mortifier_n must_v abstain_v from_o every_o thing_n that_o be_v unlawful_a but_o these_o that_o they_o may_v abstain_v from_o thing_n unlawful_a must_v also_o deny_v to_o themselves_o satisfaction_n in_o thing_n lawful_a and_o pleasant_a and_o this_o be_v in_o a_o just_a proportion_n to_o the_o end_n the_o subdue_a the_o passion_n lest_o their_o liberty_n and_o boldness_n become_v licentious_a and_o we_o shall_v easy_o deny_v their_o importunity_n to_o sin_n when_o we_o will_v not_o please_v they_o in_o those_o thing_n in_o which_o we_o may_v such_o in_o which_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o the_o danger_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o the_o conviction_n of_o reason_n and_o religion_n do_v not_o immediate_o cooperate_v and_o this_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o david_n when_o he_o have_v thirst_v for_o the_o water_n of_o bethlehem_n and_o some_o of_o his_o worthy_n venture_v their_o life_n and_o bring_v it_o he_o refuse_v to_o drink_v it_o but_o pour_v it_o upon_o the_o ground_n 17._o unto_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v it_o become_v a_o drink-offering_a unto_o the_o lord_n a_o acceptable_a oblation_n in_o which_o he_o 〈◊〉_d his_o desire_n to_o god_n deny_v himself_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o such_o a_o desire_n which_o be_v natural_a and_o innocent_a save_v that_o it_o be_v something_o nice_a delicate_a and_o curious_a like_o this_o be_v the_o act_n of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o mountain_n nitria_n to_o one_o of_o which_o a_o 〈◊〉_d fair_a cluster_n of_o dry_a grape_n be_v send_v he_o refuse_v to_o taste_v they_o lest_o he_o shall_v be_v too_o sensual_a and_o much_o please_v but_o send_v they_o to_o another_o and_o he_o to_o a_o three_o and_o the_o same_o consideration_n transmit_v the_o present_a through_o all_o their_o cell_n till_o it_o come_v to_o the_o first_o man_n again_o all_o of_o they_o not_o dare_v to_o content_v their_o appetite_n in_o a_o thing_n too_o much_o desire_v lest_o the_o like_a importunity_n in_o the_o instance_n of_o a_o sin_n shall_v prevail_v upon_o they_o to_o these_o person_n the_o best_a instrument_n of_o discipline_n be_v subtraction_n rather_o than_o imposition_n of_o austerity_n let_v they_o be_v great_a hater_n of_o corporal_a pleasure_n eat_v for_o necessity_n diet_n 〈◊〉_d and_o cheap_a abridge_n and_o make_v short_a the_o opportunity_n of_o natural_a and_o permit_v solace_n hor._n refuse_v exterior_a comfort_n not_o choose_v the_o most_o pleasant_a object_n nor_o suffer_a delight_n to_o be_v the_o end_n of_o eat_v and_o therefore_o separate_a delight_n from_o it_o as_o much_o as_o prudent_o they_o may_v not_o be_v too_o importunate_a with_o god_n to_o remove_v his_o gentle_a hand_n of_o paternal_a correction_n but_o inure_v ourselves_o to_o patient_a suffering_n and_o indifferent_a acceptation_n of_o the_o cross_n that_o god_n lay_v upon_o we_o at_o no_o hand_n live_v delicate_o or_o curious_o or_o impatient_o and_o this_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o s._n paul_n suffer_v with_o excellent_a temper_n all_o those_o persecution_n and_o inconvenience_n which_o the_o enemy_n of_o religion_n load_v he_o withal_o which_o he_o call_v bear_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n in_o his_o body_n and_o carry_v 17._o about_o in_o his_o body_n the_o die_a or_o mortification_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n it_o be_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o 10._o persecution_n which_o because_o he_o bear_v patient_o and_o be_v accustom_v to_o and_o he_o accept_v with_o indifference_n and_o renunciation_n they_o be_v the_o mortification_n and_o the_o mark_n of_o jesus_n that_o be_v a_o true_a 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o great_a effect_n and_o interest_n for_o the_o prevent_a sin_n by_o the_o mortification_n of_o his_o natural_a desire_n 16._o three_o but_o in_o the_o pale_a of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v and_o have_v be_v many_o tall_a cedar_n 〈◊〉_d top_n have_v reach_v to_o heaven_n some_o there_o be_v that_o choose_v affliction_n of_o the_o body_n that_o by_o turn_v the_o bent_n and_o inclination_n of_o their_o affection_n into_o sensual_a 〈◊〉_d they_o may_v not_o only_o cut_v off_o all_o pretension_n of_o temptation_n but_o grow_v in_o spiritual_a grace_n and_o perfection_n intellectual_a and_o beatify_v to_o this_o purpose_n they_o serve_v themselves_o with_o the_o instance_n of_o sackcloth_n hard_a lodging_n long_a fast_n pernoctation_n in_o prayer_n renunciation_n of_o all_o secular_a possession_n great_a and_o expensive_a charity_n bodily_a labour_n to_o great_a weariness_n and_o affliction_n and_o many_o other_o prodigy_n of_o voluntary_a suffering_n which_o scripture_n and_o the_o
fight_n when_o we_o contend_v earnest_o against_o they_o and_o resist_v they_o unto_o blood_n if_o need_v be_v that_o be_v being_n pure_a as_o he_o be_v pure_a but_o beside_o this_o positive_a rejection_n of_o all_o evil_a and_o perpetual_o contest_v against_o sin_n we_o must_v pursue_v the_o interest_n of_o virtue_n and_o a_o active_a religion_n 27._o and_o beside_o this_o say_v s._n peter_n give_v all_o diligence_n add_v to_o your_o faith_n virtue_n to_o 23._o your_o virtue_n knowledge_n and_o to_o knowledge_n temperance_n and_o to_o temperance_n patience_n and_o to_o patience_n godliness_n and_o to_o godliness_n brotherly_n kindness_n and_o to_o brotherly_a kindness_n charity_n all_o this_o be_v a_o evident_a prosecution_n of_o the_o first_o design_n the_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n of_o a_o whole_a life_n the_o be_v clear_a from_o all_o spot_n and_o blemish_n a_o be_v pure_a and_o so_o present_v unto_o christ_n for_o upon_o this_o the_o covenant_n be_v found_v to_o this_o all_o industry_n must_v endeavour_v and_o arrive_v in_o their_o proportion_n 9_o for_o if_o these_o thing_n be_v in_o you_o and_o abound_v they_o shall_v make_v that_o you_o be_v neither_o barren_a nor_o unfruitful_a in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ._n but_o he_o that_o lack_v these_o thing_n be_v blind_a and_o have_v forget_v he_o be_v purge_v from_o his_o old_a sin_n that_o be_v he_o have_v lose_v his_o baptismal_a grace_n and_o be_v put_v from_o the_o first_o state_n of_o his_o redemption_n towards_o that_o state_n which_o be_v contradictory_n and_o destructive_a of_o it_o 28._o now_o because_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v in_o latitude_n distance_n and_o divisibility_n and_o only_o enjoin_v a_o sedulity_n and_o great_a endeavour_n all_o that_o we_o can_v dwell_v upon_o be_v this_o that_o he_o who_o endeavour_v most_o be_v most_o secure_a and_o every_o degree_n of_o negligence_n be_v a_o degree_n of_o danger_n and_o although_o in_o the_o intermedial_a condition_n between_o the_o two_o state_n of_o christianity_n and_o a_o full_a impiety_n there_o be_v a_o state_n of_o recovery_n and_o possibility_n yet_o there_o be_v danger_n in_o every_o part_n of_o it_o and_o it_o increase_v according_a as_o the_o deflection_n and_o irregularity_n come_v to_o its_o height_n position_n state_n and_o finality_n so_o that_o we_o must_v give_v all_o diligence_n to_o work_v out_o our_o salvation_n and_o it_o will_v ever_o be_v with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a with_o fear_n that_o we_o do_v not_o lose_v our_o innocence_n and_o with_o tremble_a if_o we_o have_v lose_v it_o for_o fear_v we_o never_o recover_v or_o never_o be_v accept_v but_o holiness_n of_o life_n and_o uninterrupted_a sanctity_n be_v the_o condition_n of_o our_o salvation_n the_o ingredient_n of_o the_o covenant_n we_o must_v proportion_v our_o degree_n of_o hope_n and_o confidence_n of_o heaven_n according_a as_o we_o have_v obtain_v degree_n of_o innocence_n or_o perseverance_n or_o restitution_n only_o this_o as_o it_o be_v certain_a he_o be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o reprobation_n who_o live_v unto_o sin_n that_o be_v who_o action_n be_v habitual_o criminal_a who_o give_v more_o of_o his_o consent_n to_o wickedness_n than_o to_o virtue_n so_o it_o be_v also_o certain_a he_o be_v not_o in_o the_o state_n of_o god_n favour_n and_o sanctification_n unless_o he_o live_v unto_o righteousness_n that_o be_v who_o desire_n and_o purpose_n and_o endeavour_n and_o action_n and_o custom_n be_v spiritual_a holy_a sanctify_a and_o obedient_a when_o sin_n be_v dead_a and_o the_o spirit_n be_v life_n when_o the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v mortify_v and_o the_o heart_n be_v purge_v from_o a_o evil_a conscience_n and_o we_o abound_v in_o a_o whole_a systeme_n of_o christian_a virtue_n when_o our_o heart_n be_v right_a to_o god_n and_o with_o our_o affection_n and_o our_o will_n we_o love_v god_n and_o keep_v his_o commandment_n when_o we_o do_v not_o only_o cry_v lord_n lord_n but_o also_o do_v his_o will_n then_o christ_n dwell_v in_o we_o and_o we_o in_o christ._n now_o let_v all_o this_o be_v take_v in_o the_o low_a sense_n that_o can_v be_v imagine_v all_o i_o say_v which_o out_o of_o scripture_n i_o have_v transcribe_v cast_v away_o every_o weight_n lay_v aside_o all_o malice_n mortify_v the_o deed_n of_o the_o flesh_n crucify_a the_o old_a man_n with_o all_o his_o affection_n and_o lust_n and_o then_o have_v escape_v the_o corruption_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n through_o lust_n beside_o this_o add_v virtue_n to_o virtue_n till_o all_o righteousness_n be_v fulfil_v in_o we_o walk_v in_o the_o light_n put_v on_o the_o lord_n jesus_n purify_n ourselves_o as_o god_n be_v pure_a follow_v peace_n with_o all_o man_n and_o holiness_n resist_v unto_o blood_n live_v in_o the_o spirit_n be_v holy_a in_o all_o manner_n of_o conversation_n as_o he_o be_v holy_a be_v careful_a and_o excellent_a in_o all_o conversation_n and_o godliness_n all_o this_o be_v a_o pursuit_n of_o the_o first_o design_n of_o christ_n death_n and_o our_o reconcilement_n can_v mean_v no_o less_o but_o that_o 1._o we_o shall_v have_v in_o we_o no_o affection_n to_o a_o sin_n of_o which_o we_o can_v best_o judge_v when_o we_o never_o choose_v it_o and_o never_o fall_v under_o it_o but_o by_o surprise_n and_o never_o lie_v under_o it_o at_o all_o but_o instant_o recover_v judge_v ourselves_o severe_o and_o 2._o that_o we_o shall_v choose_v virtue_n with_o great_a freedom_n of_o spirit_n and_o alacrity_n and_o pursue_v it_o earnest_o 〈◊〉_d integral_o and_o make_v it_o the_o business_n of_o our_o 〈◊〉_d life_n and_o that_o 3._o the_o effect_n of_o this_o be_v that_o sin_n be_v crucify_v in_o we_o and_o the_o desire_n to_o it_o dead_a flat_a and_o useless_a and_o that_o our_o desire_n of_o serve_v christ_n be_v quick-spirited_n active_a and_o effective_a inquisitive_a for_o opportunity_n apprehensive_a of_o the_o offer_n cheerful_a in_o the_o action_n and_o persevere_v in_o the_o employment_n 29._o now_o let_v a_o prudent_a person_n imagine_v what_o infirmity_n and_o oversight_n can_v consist_v with_o a_o state_n thus_o describe_v and_o all_o that_o do_v no_o violence_n to_o the_o covenant_n god_n pity_v we_o and_o call_v we_o not_o to_o a_o account_n for_o what_o 〈…〉_z moral_o can_v or_o certain_o will_v not_o with_o great_a industry_n be_v prevent_v but_o whatsoever_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o this_o condition_n be_v a_o abatement_n from_o our_o hope_n as_o it_o be_v a_o retire_n from_o our_o duty_n and_o be_v with_o great_a or_o less_o difficulty_n cure_v as_o be_v the_o degree_n of_o its_o distance_n from_o that_o condition_n which_o christ_n stipulate_v with_o we_o when_o we_o become_v his_o disciple_n for_o we_o be_v just_a so_o restore_v to_o our_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o favour_n as_o we_o be_v restore_v to_o our_o state_n of_o purity_n and_o holiness_n now_o this_o redintegration_n or_o renew_n of_o we_o into_o the_o first_o condition_n be_v also_o call_v repentance_n and_o be_v permit_v to_o all_o person_n who_o still_o remain_v within_o the_o power_n and_o possibility_n of_o the_o covenant_n that_o be_v who_o be_v not_o in_o a_o state_n contradictory_n to_o the_o state_n and_o portion_n of_o grace_n but_o with_o a_o difficulty_n increase_v by_o all_o circumstance_n and_o incidence_n of_o the_o crime_n and_o person_n and_o this_o i_o shall_v best_o represent_v in_o repeat_v these_o consideration_n 1._o some_o sin_n be_v past_a hope_n of_o pardon_n in_o this_o life_n 2._o all_o that_o be_v pardon_v be_v pardon_v by_o part_n revocable_o and_o imperfect_o during_o this_o life_n not_o quick_o nor_o yet_o manifest_o 3._o repentance_n contain_v in_o it_o many_o operation_n part_n and_o employment_n its_o term_n and_o purpose_n be_v to_o redintegrate_a our_o lose_a condition_n that_o be_v in_o a_o second_o and_o less_o perfect_a sense_n but_o as_o much_o as_o in_o such_o circumstance_n we_o can_v to_o verify_v our_o first_o obligation_n of_o innocence_n and_o holiness_n in_o all_o manner_n of_o conversation_n and_o godliness_n 30._o concern_v the_o first_o it_o be_v too_o sad_a a_o consideration_n to_o be_v too_o dogmatical_a and_o conclusive_a in_o it_o and_o therefore_o i_o shall_v only_o recall_v those_o express_v of_o scripture_n which_o may_v without_o envy_n decree_v the_o article_n such_o as_o be_v those_o of_o s._n paul_n that_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a sort_n of_o man_n who_o he_o twice_o describe_v who_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o renew_v again_o unto_o repentance_n or_o those_o of_o s._n peter_n such_o who_o latter_a end_n be_v worse_a than_o the_o beginning_n because_o after_o they_o once_o have_v escape_v the_o pollution_n of_o the_o world_n they_o be_v entangle_v therein_o such_o who_o as_o our_o bless_a saviour_n threaten_v shall_v never_o be_v forgive_v in_o this_o world_n nor_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v
they_o not_o to_o retain_v they_o or_o invite_v they_o but_o as_o object_n of_o displeasure_n to_o avert_v they_o from_o we_o 2._o to_o resist_v all_o lustful_a desire_n and_o extinguish_v they_o by_o their_o proper_a correctory_n and_o remedy_n 3._o to_o resuse_v all_o occasion_n opportunity_n and_o temptation_n to_o impurity_n deny_v to_o please_v a_o wanton_a 〈◊〉_d or_o to_o use_v a_o 〈◊〉_d gesture_n or_o to_o go_v into_o a_o danger_n or_o to_o converse_v with_o a_o improper_a unsafe_a object_n hate_v the_o garment_n spot_v with_o the_o flesh_n so_o s._n judas_n call_v it_o and_o not_o to_o look_v upon_o a_o maid_n so_o job_n not_o to_o sit_v with_o a_o woman_n that_o be_v a_o singer_n so_o the_o son_n of_o sirach_n 4._o to_o be_v of_o a_o liberal_a soul_n not_o mingle_v with_o affection_n of_o money_n and_o inclination_n of_o covetousness_n not_o do_v any_o act_n of_o violence_n rapine_n or_o injustice_n 5._o to_o be_v ingenuous_a in_o our_o thought_n purpose_n and_o profession_n speak_v nothing_o contrary_a to_o our_o intention_n but_o be_v real_o what_o we_o 〈◊〉_d 6._o to_o give_v all_o 〈◊〉_d our_o faculty_n and_o affection_n to_o god_n without_o divide_v interest_n between_o god_n and_o his_o enemy_n without_o entertain_v of_o any_o one_o crime_n in_o society_n with_o our_o pretence_n for_o god_n 7._o not_o to_o lie_v in_o sin_n but_o instant_o to_o repent_v of_o it_o and_o return_n purify_n our_o conscience_n from_o dead_a work_n 8._o not_o to_o dissemble_v our_o faith_n or_o belief_n when_o we_o be_v require_v to_o its_o confession_n pretend_v a_o persuasion_n comply_v with_o those_o from_o who_o 〈◊〉_d we_o differ_v lust_n covetousness_n and_o hypocrisy_n be_v the_o three_o great_a enemy_n of_o this_o grace_n they_o be_v the_o mote_n of_o our_o eye_n and_o the_o spot_n of_o our_o soul_n the_o reward_n of_o purity_n be_v the_o vision_n beatifical_a if_o we_o be_v pure_a as_o god_n be_v pure_a we_o shall_v also_o see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v when_o we_o awake_v up_o after_o his_o likeness_n we_o shall_v 〈◊〉_d hold_v his_o presence_n to_o which_o in_o this_o world_n we_o be_v consign_v by_o freedom_n from_o the_o care_n of_o covetousness_n the_o shame_n of_o lust_n the_o fear_n of_o discovery_n and_o the_o sting_n of_o a_o evil_a conscience_n which_o be_v the_o portion_n of_o the_o several_a impurity_n here_o forbid_v 17._o seven_o bless_v be_v the_o peacemaker_n for_o they_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o child_n of_o 17._o god_n the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n be_v first_o pure_a and_o then_o peaceable_a that_o be_v the_o order_n of_o the_o beatitude_n as_o soon_o as_o jesus_n be_v bear_v the_o angel_n sing_v a_o hymn_n glory_n be_v to_o god_n on_o high_a and_o on_o earth_n peace_n good_a will_n towards_o man_n signify_v the_o two_o great_a 〈◊〉_d upon_o which_o christ_n be_v dispatch_v in_o his_o legation_n from_o heaven_n to_o earth_n he_o be_v the_o prince_n of_o peace_n follow_v peace_n with_o all_o man_n and_o holiness_n without_o which_o no_o man_n ever_o shall_v see_v god_n the_o act_n of_o this_o grace_n be_v 1._o to_o mortisie_n our_o anger_n 〈◊〉_d and_o fiery_a disposition_n apt_a to_o enkindle_v upon_o every_o slight_a accident_n inadvertency_n or_o misfortune_n of_o a_o friend_n or_o servant_n 2._o not_o to_o be_v hasty_a rash_a provocative_a or_o upbraid_v in_o our_o language_n 3._o to_o live_v quiet_o and_o serene_o in_o our_o family_n and_o neighbourhood_n 4._o not_o to_o backbite_v slander_n misreport_n or_o undervalue_v any_o man_n carrying_z tale_n or_o sow_v dissension_n between_o brethren_n 5._o not_o to_o interest_n ourselves_o in_o the_o quarrel_n of_o other_o by_o abet_v either_o part_n except_z where_o charity_n call_v we_o to_o rescue_v the_o oppress_v and_o then_o also_o to_o do_v a_o work_n of_o charity_n without_o mixture_n of_o uncharitableness_n 6._o to_o avoid_v all_o suit_n of_o law_n as_o much_o as_o be_v possible_a without_o entrench_v upon_o any_o other_o collateral_a obligation_n towards_o a_o three_o interest_n or_o a_o necessary_a support_n for_o ourselves_o or_o great_a conveniency_n for_o our_o family_n or_o if_o we_o be_v engage_v in_o law_n to_o pursue_v our_o just_a interest_n with_o just_a mean_n and_o charitable_a maintenance_n 7._o to_o endeavour_v by_o all_o mean_n to_o reconcile_v disagree_v person_n 8._o to_o endeavour_v by_o affability_n and_o fair_a deportment_n to_o win_v the_o love_n of_o our_o neighbour_n 9_o to_o offer_v satisfaction_n to_o all_o who_o we_o have_v wrong_v or_o slander_v and_o to_o remit_v the_o offence_n of_o other_o and_o in_o trial_n of_o right_a to_o find_v out_o the_o most_o charitable_a expedient_a to_o determine_v it_o as_o by_o indifferent_a arbitration_n or_o something_o like_o it_o 10._o to_o be_v open_a free_a and_o ingenuous_a in_o reprehension_n and_o fair_a expostulation_n with_o person_n who_o we_o conceive_v to_o have_v wrong_v we_o that_o no_o seed_n of_o malice_n or_o rancour_n may_v be_v latent_fw-la in_o we_o and_o upon_o the_o breath_n of_o a_o new_a displeasure_n break_v out_o into_o a_o flame_n 11._o to_o be_v modest_a in_o our_o arguing_n dispute_n and_o demand_n not_o lay_v great_a interest_n upon_o trifle_n 12._o to_o moderate_v balance_n and_o temper_v our_o zeal_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o prudence_n and_o the_o allay_n of_o charity_n that_o we_o quarrel_v not_o for_o opinion_n nor_o entitle_v god_n in_o our_o impotent_a and_o mistake_v fancy_n nor_o lose_v charity_n for_o a_o pretence_n of_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n 13._o to_o pray_v hearty_o for_o our_o enemy_n real_a or_o imaginary_a always_o love_v and_o be_v apt_a to_o benefit_v their_o person_n and_o to_o cure_v their_o fault_n by_o charitable_a remedy_n 14._o to_o abstain_v from_o do_v all_o affront_n disgrace_n slight_n and_o 〈◊〉_d jearing_n and_o mock_n of_o our_o neighbour_n not_o give_v he_o appellative_n of_o scorn_n or_o irrision_n 15._o to_o submit_v to_o all_o our_o superior_n in_o all_o thing_n either_o do_v what_o they_o command_v or_o suffer_v what_o they_o impose_v at_o no_o hand_n lift_v our_o 〈◊〉_d against_o those_o upon_o who_o the_o character_n of_o god_n and_o the_o mark_n of_o jesus_n be_v imprint_v in_o signal_n and_o eminent_a authority_n such_o as_o be_v principal_o the_o king_n and_o then_o the_o bishop_n who_o god_n have_v set_v to_o watch_v over_o our_o soul_n 16._o not_o to_o invade_v the_o possession_n of_o our_o neighbour_n or_o commence_v war_n but_o when_o we_o be_v bind_v by_o justice_n and_o legal_a trust_n to_o defend_v the_o right_n of_o other_o or_o our_o own_o in_o order_n to_o our_o duty_n 17._o not_o to_o speak_v evil_a of_o dignity_n or_o undervalue_v their_o person_n or_o publish_v their_o fault_n or_o upbraid_v the_o levities_n of_o our_o governor_n know_v that_o they_o also_o be_v design_v by_o god_n to_o be_v convert_v to_o we_o for_o castigation_n and_o amendment_n of_o we_o 18._o not_o to_o be_v busy_a in_o other_o man_n affair_n and_o then_o the_o peace_n of_o god_n will_v rest_v upon_o we_o 9_o 23._o the_o reward_n be_v no_o less_o than_o the_o adoption_n and_o inheritance_n of_o son_n for_o he_o have_v give_v unto_o 16._o we_o power_n to_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o he_o be_v the_o father_n of_o peace_n and_o the_o son_n of_o peace_n 20._o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o theresore_n have_v a_o title_n to_o the_o inheritance_n of_o son_n to_o be_v heir_n with_o god_n and_o coheir_n with_o christ_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o peace_n and_o essential_a and_o never-failing_a 17._o charity_n 18._o eight_o bless_v be_v they_o which_o be_v persecute_v sore_a righteousness_n sake_n for_o they_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n this_o be_v the_o hard_a command_n in_o the_o whole_a discipline_n of_o jesus_n be_v fortify_v with_o a_o double_a blessedness_n for_o it_o follow_v immediate_o bless_a be_v you_o when_o man_n shall_v revile_v you_o and_o persecute_v you_o meaning_n that_o all_o persecution_n for_o a_o cause_n of_o righteousness_n though_o the_o affliction_n be_v instance_a only_o in_o reproachful_a language_n shall_v be_v a_o title_n to_o the_o blessedness_n any_o suffering_n for_o any_o good_a or_o harmless_a action_n be_v a_o degree_n of_o martyrdom_n it_o be_v the_o great_a testimony_n in_o the_o world_n 25._o of_o the_o great_a love_n to_o quit_v that_o for_o god_n which_o have_v possess_v our_o most_o natural_a regular_a and_o orderly_a affection_n it_o be_v a_o prefer_v god_n cause_n before_o our_o own_o interest_n it_o be_v a_o love_a of_o virtue_n without_o secular_a end_n it_o be_v the_o noble_a the_o most_o resign_v ingenuous_a valiant_a act_n in_o the_o world_n to_o die_v for_o 〈◊〉_d who_o we_o never_o have_v see_v it_o be_v the_o crown_n of_o faith_n the_o confidence_n of_o hope_n and_o our_o great_a charity_n the_o primitive_a
pro_fw-la sua_fw-la rererent●●_n 1._o the_o soul_n of_o a_o christian_a be_v the_o house_n of_o god_n you_o be_v god_n building_n say_v s._n paul_n but_o the_o house_n of_o god_n be_v the_o house_n of_o prayer_n and_o therefore_o prayer_n be_v 9_o the_o work_n of_o the_o soul_n who_o organ_n be_v intend_v for_o instrument_n of_o the_o divine_a praise_n and_o when_o every_o stop_n and_o pause_v of_o those_o instrument_n be_v but_o the_o conclusion_n of_o a_o collect_n and_o every_o breathe_n be_v a_o prayer_n than_o the_o body_n become_v a_o temple_n and_o the_o soul_n be_v the_o sanctuary_n and_o more_o private_a recess_n and_o place_n of_o intercourse_n prayer_n be_v the_o great_a duty_n and_o the_o great_a privilege_n of_o a_o christian_a it_o be_v his_o intercourse_n with_o god_n his_o sanctuary_n in_o trouble_n his_o remedy_n for_o sin_n his_o cure_n of_o grief_n and_o as_o s._n gregory_n call_v it_o it_o be_v the_o principal_a instrument_n whereby_o we_o minister_v to_o god_n in_o execution_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o eternal_a predestination_n and_o those_o thing_n which_o god_n intend_v for_o we_o we_o bring_v to_o ourselves_o by_o the_o mediation_n of_o holy_a prayer_n prayer_n be_v the_o sid_n ascent_n of_o the_o mind_n to_o god_n and_o a_o petition_v for_o such_o thing_n as_o we_o need_v for_o our_o support_n and_o duty_n it_o be_v a_o abstract_n and_o summary_n of_o christian_a religion_n prayer_n be_v a_o act_n of_o religion_n and_o dinine_a facit_fw-la worship_n confess_v his_o power_n and_o his_o mercy_n it_o celebrate_v his_o attribute_n and_o confess_v his_o glory_n and_o reveres_fw-la his_o person_n and_o implore_v his_o aid_n and_o gives_z thanks_o for_o his_o blessing_n it_o be_v a_o act_n of_o humility_n condescension_n and_o dependence_n express_v in_o the_o prostration_n of_o our_o body_n and_o humiliation_n of_o our_o spirit_n it_o be_v a_o act_n of_o charity_n when_o we_o pray_v for_o other_o it_o be_v a_o act_n of_o repentance_n when_o it_o confess_v and_o beg_v pardon_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o exercise_n every_o grace_n according_a to_o the_o design_n of_o the_o man_n and_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o prayer_n so_o that_o there_o will_v be_v less_o need_n to_o amass_o argument_n to_o invite_v we_o to_o this_o duty_n every_o part_n be_v a_o excellence_n and_o every_o end_n of_o it_o be_v a_o blessing_n and_o every_o design_n be_v a_o motive_n and_o every_o need_n be_v a_o impulsive_a to_o this_o holy_a office_n let_v we_o but_o remember_v how_o many_o need_v we_o have_v at_o how_o cheap_a a_o rate_n we_o may_v obtain_v their_o remedy_n and_o yet_o how_o honourable_a the_o employment_n be_v to_o go_v to_o god_n with_o confidence_n and_o to_o fetch_v our_o supply_n with_o easiness_n and_o joy_n and_o then_o without_o far_a preface_n we_o may_v address_v ourselves_o to_o the_o understanding_n of_o that_o duty_n by_o which_o we_o imitate_v the_o employment_n of_o angel_n and_o beatify_v spirit_n by_o which_o we_o ascènd_n to_o god_n in_o spirit_n while_o we_o remain_v on_o earth_n and_o god_n descend_v on_o earth_n while_o he_o yet_o reside_v in_o heaven_n sit_v there_o on_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o kingdom_n 2._o our_o first_o enquiry_n must_v be_v concern_v the_o matter_n of_o our_o prayer_n for_o our_o desire_n be_v not_o to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o our_o prayer_n unless_o reason_n and_o religion_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o our_o desire_n the_o old_a heathen_n 〈◊〉_d pray_v to_o their_o god_n for_o such_o thing_n which_o they_o be_v ashamed_a to_o name_v public_o before_o man_n and_o these_o be_v their_o private_a prayer_n which_o they_o dare_v not_o for_o their_o undecency_n or_o iniquity_n make_v public_a and_o indeed_o sometime_o the_o best_a man_n ask_v of_o god_n thing_n not_o unlawful_a in_o themselves_o yet_o very_o hurtful_a to_o they_o and_o therefore_o as_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o right_a reason_n we_o be_v teach_v in_o general_a what_o be_v lawful_a to_o be_v ask_v so_o it_o be_v still_o to_o be_v submit_v to_o god_n when_o we_o have_v ask_v lawful_a thing_n to_o grant_v to_o we_o in_o horat._n kindness_n or_o to_o deny_v we_o in_o mercy_n after_o all_o the_o rule_n that_o can_v be_v give_v we_o we_o not_o be_v able_a in_o many_o instance_n to_o judge_v for_o ourselves_o unless_o also_o we_o can_v certain_o pronounce_v concern_v future_a contingency_n but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v now_o send_v upon_o the_o church_n and_o the_o rule_n of_o christ_n be_v leave_v to_o his_o church_n together_o with_o his_o form_n of_o prayer_n teach_v and_o prescribe_v to_o his_o disciple_n we_o have_v sufficient_a instruction_n for_o the_o matter_n of_o our_o prayer_n so_o far_o as_o concern_v the_o lawfulness_n or_o unlawfulness_n and_o the_o rule_n be_v easy_a and_o of_o no_o variety_n 1._o for_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o pray_v for_o all_o thing_n that_o concern_v our_o duty_n all_o that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o labour_n for_o such_o as_o be_v glory_n and_o grace_n necessary_a assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o reward_n spiritual_a heaven_n and_o heavenly_a thing_n 2._o concern_v those_o thing_n which_o we_o may_v with_o safety_n hope_v for_o but_o be_v not_o matter_n of_o duty_n to_o we_o we_o may_v lawful_o testify_v our_o hope_n and_o express_v our_o desire_n by_o petition_n but_o if_o in_o their_o particular_n they_o be_v under_o no_o express_a promise_n but_o only_a conveniency_n of_o our_o life_n and_o person_n it_o be_v only_o lawful_a to_o pray_v for_o they_o under_o condition_n that_o they_o may_v conform_v to_o god_n will_n and_o our_o duty_n as_o they_o be_v good_a and_o place_v in_o the_o best_a order_n of_o eternity_n therefore_o 1_o for_o spiritual_a blessing_n let_v our_o prayer_n be_v particular_o importunate_a perpetual_a and_o persevere_v 2_o for_o temporal_a blessing_n let_v they_o be_v general_o juvenal_n short_a conditional_a and_o modest_a 3_o and_o whatsoever_o thing_n be_v of_o mix_a nature_n more_o spiritual_a than_o riches_n and_o less_o necessary_a than_o grace_n such_o as_o be_v gift_n and_o exterior_a aid_n we_o may_v for_o they_o as_o we_o may_v desire_v they_o and_o as_o we_o may_v expect_v est_fw-la they_o that_o be_v with_o more_o confidence_n and_o less_o restraint_n than_o 16._o in_o the_o matter_n of_o temporal_a request_n but_o with_o more_o reservedness_n and_o less_o boldness_n of_o petition_n than_o when_o we_o pray_v for_o the_o grace_n of_o sanctification_n in_o the_o first_o case_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o pray_v in_o the_o second_o it_o be_v only_o lawful_a under_o certain_a condition_n in_o the_o three_o it_o become_v to_o we_o a_o act_n of_o zeal_n nobleness_n and_o christian_a prudence_n but_o the_o matter_n of_o our_o prayer_n be_v best_a teach_v we_o in_o the_o form_n our_o lord_n teach_v his_o disciple_n which_o because_o it_o be_v short_a mysterious_a and_o like_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o spirit_n full_a of_o wisdom_n and_o latent_fw-la sense_n it_o be_v not_o improper_a to_o draw_v erem_fw-la forth_o those_o excellency_n which_o be_v intend_v and_o signify_v by_o every_o petition_n that_o by_o so_o excellent_a a_o authority_n we_o may_v know_v what_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o beg_v of_o god_n 3._o our_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n the_o address_n remind_v we_o of_o many_o part_n of_o our_o nativ_n duty_n if_o god_n be_v our_o father_n where_o be_v his_o fear_n and_o reverence_n and_o obedience_n if_o you_o be_v abraham_n child_n you_o will_v do_v the_o work_n of_o abraham_n and_o you_o be_v of_o your_o father_n the_o devil_n for_o his_o work_n you_o do_v let_v we_o not_o dare_v to_o call_v he_o father_n if_o we_o be_v rebel_n and_o enemy_n but_o if_o we_o be_v obedient_a than_o we_o know_v he_o be_v our_o father_n and_o will_v give_v we_o a_o child_n portion_n and_o the_o inheritance_n of_o son_n but_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o christ_n here_o speak_v concern_v private_a prayer_n do_v describe_v it_o in_o a_o form_n of_o plural_a signification_n to_o tell_v we_o that_o we_o be_v to_o draw_v into_o the_o communication_n of_o our_o prayer_n all_o those_o who_o be_v 8._o confederated_a in_o the_o common_a relation_n of_o son_n to_o the_o same_o father_n which_o art_n in_o heaven_n 6._o tell_v we_o asen_n where_o our_o hope_n and_o our_o heart_n must_v be_v fix_v whither_o our_o desire_n and_o our_o prayer_n must_v tend_v sursum_fw-la corda_fw-la where_o our_o treasure_n be_v there_o must_v our_o heart_n be_v also_o 4._o hallow_a be_v thy_o name_n that_o be_v let_v thy_o name_n thy_o essence_n and_o glorious_a attribute_n be_v honour_v and_o adore_v in_o all_o the_o world_n believe_v by_o faith_n love_v by_o charity_n celebrate_v with_o praise_n thank_v with_o eucharist_n and_o let_v thy_o name_n be_v hallow_v in_o we_o as_o it_o be_v in_o itself_o
hungry_a and_o therefore_o have_v so_o great_a need_n they_o may_v lawful_o do_v it_o meaning_n that_o such_o particle_n and_o circumstance_n of_o religion_n be_v not_o to_o be_v neglect_v unless_o where_o great_a cause_n of_o charity_n or_o necessity_n do_v supervene_v 2._o but_o when_o fast_v be_v in_o order_n to_o great_a and_o more_o concern_v purpose_n it_o put_v on_o more_o religion_n and_o become_v a_o duty_n according_a as_o it_o be_v necessary_a or_o high_o conduce_v to_o such_o end_n to_o the_o promote_a of_o which_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o contribute_v all_o our_o skill_n and_o faculty_n fast_v be_v principal_o operative_a to_o mortification_n of_o carnal_a appetite_n to_o which_o feast_v and_o full_a table_n do_v minister_v aptness_n and_o power_n and_o inclination_n 7._o when_o i_o feed_v they_o to_o the_o full_a than_o they_o commit_v adultery_n and_o assemble_v by_o troop_n in_o the_o harlot_n house_n and_o if_o we_o observe_v all_o our_o own_o vanity_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o upon_o every_o sudden_a joy_n or_o a_o prosperous_a accident_n or_o a_o cyp._n opulent_a fortune_n or_o a_o pamper_a body_n and_o high_o spirit_v and_o inflame_v we_o be_v apt_a to_o rashness_n levities_n inconsiderate_a expression_n scorn_n and_o pride_n idleness_n wantonness_n curiosity_n jejun_n niceness_n and_o impatience_n but_o fast_v be_v one_o of_o those_o affliction_n which_o reduce_v our_o body_n to_o want_v our_o spirit_n to_o soberness_n our_o condition_n to_o sufferance_n our_o desire_n to_o abstinence_n and_o custom_n of_o denial_n and_o so_o by_o take_v off_o the_o inundation_n jejun_n of_o sensuality_n leave_v the_o enemy_n within_o in_o a_o condition_n of_o be_v easy_o subdue_v fast_v direct_o advance_v towards_o chastity_n and_o by_o consequence_n and_o indirect_a power_n to_o patience_n and_o humility_n and_o indifferency_n but_o than_o it_o be_v not_o the_o fast_a of_o a_o day_n that_o can_v do_v this_o it_o be_v not_o a_o act_n but_o a_o state_n of_o fast_v that_o operate_v to_o mortification_n a_o perpetual_a temperance_n and_o frequent_a abstinence_n may_v abate_v such_o proportion_n of_o strength_n and_o nutriment_n as_o to_o procure_v a_o body_n mortify_v and_o 〈◊〉_d in_o desire_n and_o thus_o s._n paul_n keep_v his_o body_n under_o use_v severity_n to_o it_o for_o the_o tame_a its_o rebellion_n and_o distemperature_n and_o s._n jerom_n report_v of_o s._n hilarion_n that_o when_o he_o have_v fast_v hilarion_n much_o and_o use_v course_n diet_n and_o find_v his_o lust_n too_o strong_a for_o such_o austerity_n he_o resolve_v to_o increase_v it_o to_o the_o degree_n of_o mastery_n lessen_v his_o diet_n and_o increase_a his_o hardship_n till_o he_o shall_v rather_o think_v of_o food_n than_o wantonness_n and_o many_o time_n the_o fast_n of_o some_o man_n be_v ineffectual_a because_o they_o promise_v themselves_o cure_v too_o soon_o or_o make_v too_o gentle_a application_n or_o put_v less_o proportion_n into_o their_o antidote_n i_o have_v read_v of_o a_o maiden_n that_o see_v a_o young_a man_n much_o transport_v with_o her_o love_n and_o that_o he_o cease_v not_o to_o importune_v she_o with_o all_o the_o violent_a pursuit_n that_o passion_n can_v suggest_v tell_v he_o she_o have_v make_v a_o vow_n to_o fast_v forty_o day_n with_o bread_n and_o water_n of_o which_o she_o must_v discharge_v herself_o before_o she_o can_v think_v of_o correspond_v to_o any_o other_o desire_n and_o desire_v of_o he_o as_o a_o testimony_n of_o his_o love_n that_o he_o also_o will_v be_v a_o party_n in_o the_o same_o vow_n the_o young_a man_n undertake_v it_o that_o he_o may_v give_v probation_n of_o his_o love_n but_o because_o he_o have_v be_v use_v to_o a_o delicate_a and_o nice_a kind_n of_o life_n in_o twenty_o day_n he_o be_v so_o weaken_v that_o he_o think_v more_o of_o death_n than_o love_n and_o so_o get_v a_o cure_n for_o his_o intemperance_n and_o be_v witty_o cozen_v into_o remedy_n but_o s._n hierom_n counsel_n in_o this_o question_n be_v most_o reasonable_a not_o allow_v violent_a and_o long_a fast_n and_o then_o return_v to_o a_o ordinary_a course_n for_o these_o be_v too_o great_a change_n of_o diet_n to_o consist_v with_o health_n and_o too_o sudden_a and_o transient_a to_o obtain_v a_o permanent_a and_o natural_a effect_n but_o a_o belly_n always_o hungry_a a_o table_n 〈◊〉_d never_o full_a a_o meal_n little_a and_o necessary_a no_o extravagancy_n no_o free_a repast_n this_o be_v a_o state_n of_o fast_v which_o will_v be_v find_v to_o be_v of_o best_a avail_n to_o suppress_v pungent_a lust_n and_o rebellious_a desire_n and_o it_o be_v well_o to_o help_v this_o exercise_n with_o the_o assistence_n of_o such_o austerity_n which_o teach_v patience_n and_o ingenerate_v a_o passive_a fortitude_n and_o accustom_v we_o to_o a_o despite_n of_o pleasure_n and_o which_o be_v consistent_a with_o our_o health_n for_o if_o fast_v be_v leave_v to_o do_v the_o work_v alone_o it_o may_v chance_v either_o to_o spoil_v the_o body_n or_o not_o to_o spoil_v the_o lust._n hard_a lodging_n 〈◊〉_d garment_n laborious_a posture_n of_o prayer_n journey_n on_o foot_n sufferance_n of_o cold_a pare_a away_o the_o use_n of_o ordinary_a solace_n deny_v every_o pleasant_a appetite_n reject_v the_o most_o pleasant_a morsel_n these_o be_v in_o the_o rank_n of_o bodily_a exercise_n which_o though_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v of_o themselves_o they_o profit_v little_a yet_o they_o accustom_v we_o to_o act_n of_o self-denial_n in_o exterior_a instance_n and_o be_v not_o useless_a to_o the_o design_n of_o mortify_v carnal_a and_o sensual_a lust_n they_o have_v 〈◊〉_d a_o proportion_n of_o wisdom_n with_o these_o caution_n viz._n in_o will-worship_n that_o be_v in_o voluntary_a susception_n when_o they_o be_v not_o impose_v as_o 50._o necessary_a religion_n in_o humility_n that_o be_v without_o contempt_n of_o other_o that_o use_v they_o not_o in_o neglect_v of_o the_o body_n that_o be_v when_o they_o be_v do_v for_o discipline_n and_o mortification_n that_o the_o flesh_n by_o such_o handle_n and_o rough_a usage_n become_v less_o satisfy_v and_o more_o despise_v 3._o as_o fast_v have_v respect_n to_o the_o future_a so_o also_o to_o the_o present_a and_o so_o it_o operate_v in_o give_v assistence_n to_o prayer_n there_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o devil_n that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v eject_v but_o by_o prayer_n and_o fast_v that_o be_v prayer_n elevate_v and_o make_v intense_a by_o a_o defecate_n and_o pure_a spirit_n not_o load_v with_o the_o burden_n of_o meat_n and_o vapour_n s._n jejun_n basil_n affirm_v that_o there_o be_v certain_a angel_n depute_v by_o god_n to_o minister_v and_o to_o describe_v all_o such_o in_o every_o church_n who_o mortify_v themselves_o by_o fast_v as_o if_o paleness_n and_o a_o meager_a visage_n be_v that_o mark_n in_o the_o forehead_n which_o the_o angel_n observe_v 〈◊〉_d when_o he_o sign_v the_o saint_n in_o jerusalem_n to_o escape_v the_o judgement_n prayer_n be_v the_o chrysost._n wing_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o fast_v be_v the_o wing_n of_o prayer_n tertullian_n call_v it_o 〈◊〉_d the_o nourishment_n of_o prayer_n but_o this_o be_v a_o discourse_n of_o christian_a philosophy_n and_o he_o that_o choose_v to_o do_v any_o act_n of_o spirit_n or_o understanding_n or_o attention_n after_o a_o full_a meal_n will_v then_o perceive_v that_o abstinence_n have_v be_v the_o better_a disposition_n to_o any_o intellectual_a and_o spiritual_a action_n and_o therefore_o the_o church_n of_o god_n ever_o join_v fast_v to_o their_o more_o solemn_a office_n of_o prayer_n the_o apostle_n fast_v and_o pray_v when_o they_o lay_v hand_n and_o invocate_v 2._o the_o holy_a ghost_n upon_o saul_n and_o barnabas_n and_o these_o also_o when_o they_o have_v pray_v 23._o with_o fast_v ordain_v elder_n in_o the_o church_n of_o lystra_n and_o iconium_n and_o the_o vigil_n of_o every_o holiday_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o devotion_n of_o the_o festival_n be_v promote_v by_o the_o fast_a of_o the_o vigil_n 4._o but_o when_o fast_v relate_v to_o what_o be_v past_a it_o become_v a_o instrument_n of_o repentance_n basil._n it_o be_v a_o punitive_a and_o a_o 〈◊〉_d action_n a_o effect_n of_o godly_a sorrow_n a_o testimony_n of_o contrition_n a_o judge_v of_o ourselves_o and_o chasten_v our_o body_n that_o we_o be_v not_o judge_v of_o the_o lord_n the_o fast_a of_o the_o ninevite_n and_o the_o fast_a the_o prophet_n joel_n call_v for_o and_o 15._o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o rite_n of_o expiation_n proclaim_v this_o usefulness_n of_o fast_v etc._n in_o order_n to_o repentance_n and_o indeed_o it_o be_v a_o strange_a repentance_n that_o have_v 12._o no_o sorrow_n in_o it_o and_o a_o strange_a sorrow_n that_o have_v no_o affliction_n but_o it_o be_v the_o strange_a scene_n of_o affliction_n in_o the_o world_n when_o the_o sad_a and_o afflict_a person_n shall_v 9_o eat_v
day_n and_o bury_v and_o corrupt_v elias_n and_o samuel_n and_o all_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n in_o both_o the_o temple_n put_v all_o together_o never_o do_v so_o many_o or_o so_o great_a miracle_n as_o jesus_n do_v he_o cure_v leprous_a person_n by_o his_o touch_n he_o restore_v sight_n to_o the_o blind_a who_o be_v such_o not_o by_o any_o intervening_a accident_n hinder_v the_o act_n of_o the_o organ_n but_o by_o nature_n who_o be_v bear_v blind_a and_o who_o eye_n have_v not_o any_o natural_a possibility_n to_o receive_v sight_n who_o can_v never_o see_v without_o create_v of_o new_a eye_n for_o they_o or_o some_o integral_a part_n cooperate_n to_o vision_n and_o therefore_o the_o miracle_n be_v whole_o a_o effect_n of_o a_o divine_a power_n for_o nature_n do_v not_o at_o all_o cooperate_v or_o that_o i_o may_v use_v the_o elegant_a expression_n of_o dante_n it_o be_v such_o à_fw-la cui_fw-la natura_fw-la non_fw-la scaldò_fw-la ferro_fw-la mai_fw-gr ne_fw-fr battè_fw-fr ancude_n for_o which_o nature_n never_o do_v heat_n the_o iron_n nor_o beat_v the_o anvil_n he_o make_v crooked_a limb_n become_v straight_o and_o the_o lame_a to_o walk_v and_o habitual_a disease_n and_o inveterate_a of_o 18_o year_n continuance_n and_o once_o of_o 38_o do_v disappear_v at_o his_o speak_n like_o darkness_n at_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o sun_n he_o cast_v out_o devil_n who_o by_o the_o majesty_n of_o his_o person_n be_v force_v to_o confess_v and_o worship_v he_o and_o yet_o by_o his_o humility_n and_o restraint_n be_v command_v silence_n or_o to_o go_v whither_o he_o please_v and_o without_o his_o leave_n all_o the_o power_n of_o hell_n be_v as_o infirm_a and_o impotent_a as_o a_o wither_a member_n and_o be_v not_o able_a to_o stir_v he_o raise_v three_o dead_a person_n to_o life_n he_o feed_v thousand_o of_o people_n with_o two_o small_a fish_n and_o five_o little_a barly-cake_n and_o as_o a_o consummation_n of_o all_o power_n and_o all_o miracle_n he_o foretell_v and_o verify_v it_o that_o himself_o will_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a after_o three_o day_n sepulture_n but_o when_o himself_o have_v tell_v they_o he_o do_v miracle_n which_o no_o man_n else_o ever_o do_v they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o reprove_v his_o say_n with_o one_o single_a instance_n but_o the_o poor_a blind_a man_n find_v he_o out_o one_o instance_n to_o verify_v his_o assertion_n it_o be_v yet_o never_o hear_v that_o any_o man_n open_v the_o eye_n of_o one_o that_o be_v bear_v blind_a 5._o second_o the_o scene_n of_o his_o preach_a and_o miracle_n be_v judaea_n which_o be_v the_o pale_a of_o the_o church_n and_o god_n enclose_a portion_n of_o who_o be_v the_o oracle_n and_o the_o father_n and_o of_o who_o as_o concern_v the_o flesh_n christ_n be_v to_o come_v and_o to_o who_o he_o be_v promise_v now_o since_o these_o miracle_n be_v for_o verification_n of_o his_o be_v the_o christ_n the_o promise_a méssias_n they_o be_v then_o to_o be_v esteem_v a_o convince_a argument_n when_o all_o thing_n else_o concur_v as_o the_o prediction_n of_o the_o prophet_n the_o synchronism_n and_o the_o capacity_n of_o his_o person_n he_o bring_v miracle_n to_o attest_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o person_n so_o declare_v and_o signify_v god_n will_v not_o suffer_v his_o people_n to_o be_v abuse_v by_o miracle_n nor_o from_o heaven_n will_v speak_v so_o loud_o in_o testimony_n of_o any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o his_o own_o will_n and_o purpose_n they_o to_o who_o he_o give_v the_o oracle_n and_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prediction_n of_o the_o messiah_n and_o declare_v beforehand_o that_o at_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n the_o blind_a 5._o shall_v see_v the_o lame_a shall_v walk_v and_o the_o deaf_a shall_v hear_v the_o leper_n shall_v be_v cleanse_v and_o to_o 5._o the_o poor_a the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v preach_v can_v not_o expect_v a_o great_a conviction_n for_o acceptation_n of_o a_o person_n than_o when_o that_o happen_v which_o god_n himself_o by_o his_o prophet_n have_v consign_v as_o his_o future_a testimony_n and_o if_o there_o can_v have_v be_v deception_n in_o this_o it_o must_v needs_o have_v be_v inculpable_a in_o the_o deceive_a person_n to_o who_o error_n a_o divine_a prophecy_n have_v be_v both_o nurse_n and_o parent_n so_o that_o take_v the_o miracle_n jesus_n do_v in_o that_o conjunction_n of_o circumstance_n do_v to_o that_o people_n to_o who_o all_o their_o oracle_n be_v transmit_v by_o miraculous_a verification_n miracle_n so_o many_o so_o great_a so_o accidental_o and_o yet_o so_o regular_o to_o all_o comer_n and_o necessitous_a person_n that_o pray_v it_o after_o such_o prediction_n and_o clear_a prophecy_n and_o these_o prophecy_n own_v by_o himself_o and_o send_v by_o way_n of_o symbol_n and_o mysterious_a answer_n to_o john_n the_o baptist_n to_o who_o he_o describe_v his_o office_n by_o recount_v his_o miracle_n in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prediction_n there_o can_v be_v any_o fallibility_n or_o weakness_n pretend_v to_o this_o instrument_n of_o probation_n apply_v in_o such_o circumstance_n to_o such_o a_o people_n who_o be_v dear_a to_o god_n will_v be_v preserve_v from_o invincible_a deception_n and_o be_v command_v by_o he_o to_o expect_v the_o messiah_n in_o such_o a_o equipage_n of_o power_n and_o demonstration_n of_o miracle_n be_v therefore_o not_o deceive_v nor_o can_v they_o because_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o accept_v it_o 6._o three_o so_o that_o now_o we_o must_v not_o look_v upon_o these_o miracle_n as_o a_o argument_n primary_o intend_v to_o convince_v the_o gentile_n but_o the_o jew_n it_o be_v a_o high_a probability_n to_o they_o also_o and_o so_o it_o be_v design_v also_o in_o a_o secondary_a intention_n but_o it_o can_v not_o be_v a_o argument_n to_o they_o so_o certain_a because_o it_o be_v destitute_a of_o two_o great_a supporter_n for_o they_o neither_o believe_v the_o prophet_n foretell_v the_o messiah_n to_o be_v such_o nor_o yet_o see_v the_o miracle_n do_v so_o that_o they_o have_v no_o testimony_n of_o god_n beforehand_o and_o be_v to_o rely_v upon_o humane_a testimony_n for_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n which_o because_o it_o be_v fallible_a can_v not_o infer_v a_o necessary_a conclusion_n alone_o and_o of_o itself_o but_o it_o put_v on_o degree_n of_o persuasion_n as_o the_o 〈◊〉_d have_v degree_n of_o certainty_n or_o universality_n that_o they_o also_o which_o see_v not_o and_o yet_o have_v believe_v may_v be_v bless_v and_o therefore_o christ_n send_v his_o apostle_n to_o convert_v the_o gentile_n and_o supply_v in_o their_o case_n what_o in_o his_o own_o can_v not_o be_v applicable_a or_o so_o concern_v they_o for_o he_o send_v they_o to_o do_v miracle_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o nation_n that_o they_o may_v not_o doubt_v the_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o prepare_v they_o also_o with_o a_o prophecy_n foretell_v that_o they_o shall_v do_v the_o same_o and_o great_a miracle_n than_o he_o do_v they_o have_v great_a prejudices_fw-la to_o contest_v against_o and_o a_o more_o unequal_a distance_n from_o belief_n and_o aptness_n to_o credit_v such_o thing_n therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o apostle_n shall_v do_v great_a miracle_n to_o remove_v the_o great_a mountain_n of_o objection_n and_o they_o do_v so_o and_o by_o do_v it_o in_o pursuance_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o end_n of_o christ_n and_o christianity_n verify_v the_o fame_n and_o celebrity_n of_o their_o master_n miracle_n and_o represent_v to_o all_o the_o world_n his_o power_n and_o his_o veracity_n and_o his_o divinity_n 7._o four_o for_o when_o the_o holy_a jesus_n appear_v upon_o the_o stage_n of_o palestine_n all_o thing_n be_v quiet_a and_o at_o rest_n from_o prodigy_n and_o wonder_n nay_o john_n the_o baptist_n who_o by_o his_o excellent_a sanctity_n and_o austerity_n have_v get_v great_a reputation_n to_o his_o person_n and_o doctrine_n yet_o do_v no_o miracle_n and_o no_o man_n else_o do_v any_o save_o some_o few_o exorcist_n among_o the_o jew_n cure_v some_o demoniac_n and_o distract_a people_n so_o that_o in_o this_o silence_n a_o prophet_n appear_v with_o sign_n and_o wonder_n have_v nothing_o to_o lessen_v the_o argument_n no_o opposite_a of_o like_a power_n or_o appearance_n of_o a_o contradictory_n design_n and_o therefore_o it_o persuade_v infinite_o and_o be_v certain_o operative_a upon_o all_o person_n who_o interest_n and_o love_n of_o the_o world_n do_v not_o destroy_v the_o piety_n of_o their_o will_n and_o put_v their_o understanding_n into_o fetter_n and_o nicodemus_n a_o doctor_n of_o the_o law_n be_v convince_v say_v we_o know_v that_o thou_o be_v a_o 2._o doctor_n send_v from_o god_n for_o no_o man_n can_v do_v those_o 〈◊〉_d which_o thou_o do_v unless_o god_n be_v with_o he_o but_o when_o the_o devil_n see_v what_o great_a
you_o &_o learn_v of_o i_o for_o my_o yoke_n be_v easy_a &_o my_o burden_n be_v light_a revel_v 2_o 10._o be_v thou_o faithful_a unto_o death_n and_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o a_o crown_n of_o life_n 1_o cor._n 9_o 24_o 25._o so_o run_v that_o you_o may_v obtain_v every_o man_n that_o strive_v for_o y_z e_z mastery_n be_v temperate_a in_o all_o thing_n now_o they_o do_v it_o to_o obtain_v a_o corrupible_a crown_n but_o we_o a_o incorruptible_a the_o holy_a jesus_n come_v to_o break_v from_o off_o our_o neck_n two_o great_a yoke_n the_o one_o of_o sin_n by_o which_o we_o be_v fetter_v and_o imprison_v in_o the_o condition_n of_o slave_n and_o miserable_a person_n the_o other_o of_o moses_n law_n by_o which_o we_o be_v keep_v in_o pupillage_n and_o minority_n and_o a_o state_n of_o imperfection_n and_o assert_v we_o into_o the_o glorious_a liberty_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o first_o be_v a_o despotic_a empire_n and_o the_o government_n of_o a_o tyrant_n the_o second_o be_v of_o a_o schoolmaster_n severe_a absolute_a and_o imperious_a but_o it_o be_v in_o order_n to_o a_o far_a good_a yet_o nothing_o pleasant_a in_o the_o sufferance_n and_o load_n and_o now_o christ_n have_v take_v off_o these_o two_o have_v put_v on_o a_o three_o he_o quit_v we_o of_o our_o burden_n but_o not_o of_o our_o duty_n and_o have_v change_v the_o former_a tyranny_n and_o the_o less-perfect_a discipline_n into_o the_o sweetness_n of_o paternal_a regiment_n and_o the_o excellency_n of_o such_o a_o institution_n who_o every_o precept_n carry_v part_n of_o its_o reward_n in_o hand_n and_o assurance_n of_o after-glory_n moses_n law_n be_v like_o sharp_a and_o unpleasant_a physic_n certain_o painful_a but_o uncertain_o healthful_a for_o it_o be_v not_o then_o communicate_v to_o they_o by_o promise_n and_o universal_a revelation_n that_o the_o end_n of_o their_o obedience_n shall_v be_v life_n eternal_a but_o they_o be_v full_a of_o hope_n it_o may_v be_v so_o as_o we_o be_v of_o health_n when_o we_o have_v a_o learned_a and_o wise_a physician_n but_o as_o yet_o the_o reward_n be_v in_o a_o cloud_n and_o the_o hope_n in_o fetter_n and_o confinement_n but_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n be_v like_o christ_n heal_v of_o disease_n he_o do_v it_o easy_o and_o he_o do_v it_o infallible_o the_o event_n be_v certain_o consequent_a and_o the_o manner_n of_o cure_n be_v by_o a_o touch_n of_o his_o hand_n or_o a_o word_n of_o his_o mouth_n or_o a_o approximation_n to_o the_o hem_n of_o his_o garment_n without_o pain_n and_o vexatious_a instrument_n my_o meaning_n be_v that_o christianity_n be_v by_o the_o assistance_n of_o christ_n spirit_n which_o he_o promise_v we_o and_o give_v we_o in_o the_o gospel_n make_v very_o easy_a to_o we_o and_o yet_o a_o reward_n so_o great_a be_v promise_v as_o be_v enough_o to_o make_v a_o lame_a man_n to_o walk_v and_o a_o break_a arm_n endure_v the_o burden_n a_o reward_n great_a enough_o to_o make_v we_o willing_a to_o do_v violence_n to_o all_o our_o inclination_n passion_n and_o desire_n a_o hundred_o weight_n to_o a_o giant_n be_v a_o light_a burden_n because_o his_o strength_n be_v disproportionable_o great_a and_o make_v it_o as_o easy_a to_o he_o as_o a_o ounce_n be_v to_o a_o child_n and_o yet_o if_o we_o have_v not_o the_o strength_n of_o giant_n if_o the_o hundred_o weight_n be_v of_o gold_n or_o jewel_n a_o weak_a person_n will_v think_v it_o no_o trouble_n to_o bear_v that_o burden_n if_o it_o be_v the_o reward_n of_o his_o portage_n and_o the_o hire_n of_o his_o labour_n the_o spirit_n be_v give_v to_o we_o to_o enable_v we_o and_o heaven_n be_v promise_v to_o encourage_v we_o the_o first_o make_v we_o able_a and_o the_o second_o make_v we_o willing_a and_o when_o we_o have_v power_n and_o affection_n we_o can_v complain_v of_o pressure_n and_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n invitation_n come_v to_o i_o for_o my_o burden_n be_v light_a my_o 〈◊〉_d be_v easy_a which_o s._n john_n 30._o 4._o also_o observe_v for_o this_o be_v the_o love_n of_o god_n that_o we_o keep_v his_o commandment_n and_o his_o commandment_n be_v not_o grievous_a for_o whatsoever_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n overcome_v the_o world_n and_o this_o be_v the_o victory_n that_o overcome_v even_o our_o faith_n that_o be_v our_o belief_n of_o god_n promise_n the_o promise_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o present_a aid_n and_o of_o heaven_n for_o the_o future_a reward_n be_v strength_n enough_o to_o overcome_v all_o the_o world_n 2._o but_o beside_o that_o god_n have_v make_v his_o yoke_n easy_a by_o exterior_a support_v more_o than_o ever_o be_v in_o any_o other_o religion_n christianity_n be_v of_o itself_o according_a to_o humane_a estimate_n a_o religion_n more_o easy_a and_o desirable_a by_o our_o natural_a and_o reasonable_a appetite_n than_o sin_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o its_o pleasure_n and_o imaginary_a felicity_n virtue_n have_v more_o pleasure_n in_o it_o than_o sin_n and_o have_v all_o satisfaction_n to_o every_o desire_n of_o man_n in_o order_n to_o humane_a and_o prudent_a end_n which_o i_o shall_v represent_v in_o the_o consideration_n of_o these_o particular_n 〈◊〉_d to_o live_v according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o jesus_n be_v in_o some_o thing_n most_o natural_a and_o proportionable_a to_o the_o desire_n and_o first_o intention_n of_o nature_n 2._o there_o be_v in_o it_o less_o trouble_n than_o in_o sin_n 3._o it_o conduce_v infinite_o to_o the_o content_a of_o our_o life_n and_o natural_a and_o political_a satisfaction_n 4._o it_o be_v a_o mean_n to_o preserve_v our_o temporal_a life_n long_o and_o healthy_a 5._o it_o be_v most_o reasonable_a and_o he_o only_o be_v prudent_a that_o do_v so_o and_o he_o a_o fool_n that_o do_v not_o and_o all_o this_o beside_o the_o consideration_n of_o a_o glorious_a and_o happy_a eternity_n 3._o concern_v the_o first_o i_o consider_v that_o we_o do_v very_o ill_a when_o in_o stead_n of_o make_v our_o natural_a infirmity_n a_o instrument_n of_o humility_n and_o of_o recourse_n to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n we_o pretend_v the_o sin_n of_o adam_n to_o countenance_v our_o actual_a sin_n natural_a infirmity_n to_o excuse_v our_o malice_n either_o lay_v adam_n in_o fault_n for_o derive_v the_o disability_n upon_o we_o or_o god_n for_o put_v we_o into_o the_o necessity_n but_o the_o 〈◊〉_d that_o we_o feel_v in_o this_o be_v from_o the_o rebellion_n of_o the_o inferior_a appetite_n against_o reason_n or_o against_o any_o religion_n that_o put_v restraint_n upon_o our_o first_o desire_n and_o therefore_o in_o carnal_a and_o sensual_a instance_n accidental_o we_o 〈◊〉_d the_o more_o natural_a averseness_n because_o god_n law_n have_v put_v our_o irascible_a and_o concupiscible_a faculty_n in_o fetter_n and_o restraint_n yet_o in_o matter_n of_o duty_n which_o be_v of_o immaterial_a and_o spiritual_a concernment_n all_o our_o natural_a reason_n be_v a_o perfect_a enemy_n and_o contradiction_n to_o and_o a_o law_n against_o vice_n it_o be_v natural_a for_o we_o to_o love_v our_o parent_n and_o they_o who_o do_v not_o be_v unnatural_a they_o do_v violence_n to_o those_o disposition_n which_o god_n give_v we_o to_o the_o constitution_n of_o our_o nature_n and_o for_o the_o design_n of_o virtue_n and_o all_o those_o tenderness_n of_o affection_n those_o bowel_n and_o relent_a disposition_n which_o be_v the_o endearment_n of_o parent_n and_o child_n be_v also_o the_o band_n of_o duty_n every_o degree_n of_o love_n make_v duty_n delectable_a and_o therefore_o either_o by_o nature_n we_o be_v incline_v to_o hate_v our_o parent_n which_o be_v against_o all_o reason_n and_o experience_n or_o else_o we_o be_v by_o nature_n incline_v to_o do_v to_o they_o all_o that_o which_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o love_n to_o such_o superior_n and_o principle_n of_o be_v and_o dependency_n and_o every_o prevarication_n from_o the_o rule_n effect_n and_o express_v of_o love_n be_v a_o contradiction_n to_o nature_n and_o a_o mortification_n to_o which_o we_o can_v be_v invite_v by_o any_o thing_n from_o within_o but_o by_o something_o from_o without_o that_o be_v violent_a and_o preternatural_a there_o be_v also_o many_o other_o virtue_n even_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o sensual_a appetite_n which_o none_o can_v lose_v but_o by_o alter_v in_o some_o degree_n the_o natural_a disposition_n and_o i_o instance_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o carnality_n and_o uncleanness_n to_o which_o possible_o some_o nature_n may_v think_v themselves_o apt_a and_o dispose_v but_o yet_o god_n have_v put_v into_o our_o mouth_n a_o bridle_n to_o curb_v the_o licentiousness_n of_o our_o speedy_a appetite_n put_v into_o our_o very_a nature_n a_o principle_n as_o strong_a to_o restrain_v it_o as_o there_o be_v in_o we_o a_o disposition_n apt_a to_o invite_v we_o and_o this_o be_v
the_o flame_n of_o hell_n that_o man_n may_v serve_v god_n without_o the_o incentives_n of_o hope_n and_o fear_n and_o pure_o for_o the_o love_n of_o god_n whether_o the_o woman_n be_v only_o imaginative_a and_o sad_a or_o also_o zealous_a i_o know_v not_o but_o god_n know_v he_o will_v have_v few_o disciple_n if_o the_o argument_n of_o invitation_n be_v not_o of_o great_a promise_n than_o the_o labour_n of_o virtue_n be_v of_o trouble_n and_o therefore_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n know_v to_o what_o we_o be_v inflexible_a and_o by_o what_o we_o be_v make_v most_o ductile_a and_o malleable_a have_v propound_v virtue_n 〈◊〉_d clothe_v and_o dress_v with_o such_o advantage_n as_o may_v entertain_v even_o our_o sensitive_a part_n and_o first_o desire_n that_o those_o also_o may_v be_v tacit._n invite_v to_o virtue_n who_o understand_v not_o what_o be_v just_a and_o reasonable_a 〈◊〉_d but_o what_o be_v profitable_a who_o be_v more_o move_v with_o advantage_n 12._o than_o justice_n and_o because_o emolument_fw-fr be_v more_o feel_v than_o innocence_n and_o a_o man_n may_v be_v poor_a for_o all_o his_o gift_n of_o 〈◊〉_d the_o holy_a jesus_n to_o endear_v the_o practice_n of_o religion_n have_v represent_v godliness_n unto_o we_o under_o the_o notion_n of_o gain_n and_o sin_n as_o unfruitful_a and_o yet_o beside_o all_o the_o natural_a and_o reasonable_a advantage_n every_o virtue_n have_v a_o supernatural_a reward_n a_o gracious_a promise_n attend_v and_o every_o vice_n be_v not_o only_o natural_o deform_v but_o be_v make_v more_o ugly_a by_o a_o threaten_a and_o horrid_a by_o a_o appendent_a curse_n henceforth_o therefore_o let_v no_o man_n complain_v that_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n be_v impossible_a for_o they_o be_v not_o only_o possible_a but_o easy_a and_o they_o that_o say_v otherwise_o and_o do_v according_o take_v more_o pain_n to_o carry_v the_o instrument_n of_o their_o own_o death_n than_o will_v serve_v to_o ascertain_v they_o of_o life_n and_o if_o we_o will_v do_v as_o much_o for_o christ_n as_o we_o have_v do_v for_o sin_n we_o shall_v find_v the_o pain_n less_o and_o the_o pleasure_n more_o and_o therefore_o such_o complainer_n be_v without_o excuse_n for_o certain_a it_o be_v they_o that_o can_v go_v in_o foul_a way_n must_v not_o say_v they_o can_v walk_v in_o fair_a they_o that_o march_v over_o rock_n in_o despite_n of_o so_o many_o impediment_n can_v travel_v the_o even_a way_n of_o religion_n and_o peace_n when_o the_o holy_a jesus_n be_v their_o guide_n and_o the_o spirit_n be_v their_o guardian_n and_o infinite_a felicity_n be_v at_o their_o journey_n end_n and_o all_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o world_n political_a oeconomical_a and_o personal_a do_v entertain_v and_o support_v they_o in_o the_o travel_n of_o the_o passage_n the_o prayer_n o_o eternal_a jesus_n who_o give_v law_n unto_o the_o world_n that_o mankind_n be_v unite_v to_o thou_o by_o the_o band_n of_o obedience_n may_v partake_v of_o all_o thy_o glory_n and_o felicity_n open_v our_o understanding_n give_v we_o the_o spirit_n of_o discern_v and_o just_a apprehension_n of_o all_o the_o beauty_n with_o which_o thou_o have_v enamel_v virtue_n to_o represent_v it_o beauteous_a and_o amiable_a in_o our_o eye_n that_o by_o the_o allurement_n of_o exterior_a decency_n and_o appendent_a blessing_n our_o present_a desire_n may_v be_v entertain_v our_o hope_n promote_v our_o affection_n satisfy_v and_o love_n enter_v in_o by_o these_o door_n may_v dwell_v in_o the_o interior_a region_n of_o the_o will._n o_o make_v we_o to_o love_v thou_o for_o thyself_o and_o religion_n for_o thou_o and_o all_o the_o instrument_n of_o religion_n in_o order_n to_o thy_o glory_n and_o our_o own_o felicity_n pull_v off_o the_o visor_n of_o sin_n and_o discover_v its_o deformity_n by_o the_o lantern_n of_o thy_o word_n and_o the_o light_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o i_o may_v never_o be_v bewitch_v with_o sottish_a appetite_n be_v please_v to_o build_v up_o all_o the_o content_n i_o expect_v in_o this_o world_n upon_o the_o interest_n of_o a_o virtuous_a life_n and_o the_o support_n of_o religion_n that_o i_o may_v be_v rich_a in_o good_a work_n content_a in_o the_o issue_n of_o thy_o providence_n my_o health_n may_v be_v the_o result_n of_o temperance_n and_o severity_n my_o mirth_n in_o spiritual_a emanation_n my_o rest_n in_o hope_n my_o peace_n in_o a_o good_a conscience_n my_o satisfaction_n and_o acquiescence_n in_o thou_o that_o from_o content_a i_o may_v pass_v to_o a_o eternal_a fullness_n from_o health_n to_o immortality_n from_o grace_n to_o glory_n walk_v in_o the_o path_n of_o righteousness_n by_o the_o water_n of_o comfort_n to_o the_o land_n of_o everlasting_a rest_n to_o feast_v in_o the_o glorious_a communication_n of_o eternity_n eternal_o adore_v love_a and_o enjoy_v the_o infinity_n of_o the_o everblessed_n and_o mysterious_a trinity_n to_o who_o be_v glory_n and_o 〈◊〉_d and_o dominion_n now_o and_o for_o ever_o amen_n discourse_n xvi_o of_o certainty_n of_o salvation_n 17._o 1._o when_o the_o holy_a jesus_n take_v a_o account_n of_o the_o first_o legation_n and_o voyage_n of_o his_o apostle_n he_o find_v they_o rejoice_v in_o privilege_n 〈◊〉_d and_o exterior_a power_n in_o their_o authority_n over_o unclean_a spirit_n but_o weigh_v it_o in_o his_o balance_n he_o find_v the_o cause_n too_o light_a and_o therefore_o divert_v it_o upon_o the_o right_a object_n rejoice_v that_o your_o name_n be_v write_v in_o heaven_n the_o revelation_n be_v confirm_v and_o more_o personal_o apply_v in_o answer_n to_o s._n peter_n question_n we_o have_v for_o saken_a all_n and_o follow_v thou_o what_o shall_v we_o have_v therefore_o their_o lord_n answer_v you_o shall_v sit_v upon_o twelve_o throne_n judge_v the_o twelve_o tribe_n of_o israel_n among_o these_o person_n to_o who_o christ_n speak_v judas_n be_v he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o twelve_o and_o he_o have_v a_o throne_n allot_v for_o he_o his_o name_n be_v describe_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n and_o a_o sceptre_n and_o a_o crown_n be_v deposit_v for_o he_o too_o for_o we_o must_v not_o judge_v of_o christ_n meaning_n by_o the_o event_n since_o he_o speak_v these_o word_n to_o produce_v in_o they_o faith_n comfort_n and_o joy_n in_o the_o best_a object_n it_o be_v a_o sermon_n of_o duty_n as_o well_o as_o a_o homily_n of_o comfort_n and_o therefore_o be_v equal_o intend_v to_o all_o the_o college_n and_o since_o the_o number_n of_o throne_n be_v proportion_v to_o the_o number_n of_o man_n it_o be_v certain_a there_o be_v no_o exception_n of_o any_o man_n there_o include_v and_o yet_o it_o be_v as_o certain_a judas_n never_o come_v to_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n and_o his_o name_n be_v blot_v out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o life_n now_o if_o we_o put_v these_o end_n together_o that_o in_o scripture_n it_o be_v not_o reveal_v to_o any_o man_n concern_v his_o final_a condition_n but_o to_o the_o die_a penitent_a thief_n and_o to_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n that_o twelve_o throne_n be_v design_v for_o they_o and_o a_o promise_v make_v of_o their_o inthronization_n and_o yet_o that_o no_o man_n final_a estate_n be_v so_o clear_o declare_v miserable_a and_o lose_v as_o that_o of_o judas_n one_o of_o the_o twelve_o to_o who_o a_o throne_n be_v promise_v the_o result_n will_v be_v that_o the_o election_n of_o holy_a person_n be_v a_o condition_n ally_v to_o duty_n absolute_a and_o infallible_a in_o the_o general_n and_o suppose_v all_o the_o disposition_n and_o requisite_n concur_v but_o fallible_a in_o the_o particular_a if_o we_o fall_v off_o from_o the_o mercy_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o prevaricate_v the_o condition_n but_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v most_o observable_a be_v that_o if_o in_o person_n so_o eminent_a and_o privilege_a and_o to_o who_o a_o revelation_n of_o their_o election_n be_v make_v as_o a_o particular_a grace_n their_o condition_n have_v one_o weak_a leg_n upon_o which_o because_o it_o do_v rely_v for_o one_o half_a of_o the_o interest_n it_o can_v be_v no_o strong_a than_o its_o supporter_n the_o condition_n of_o low_a person_n to_o who_o no_o revelation_n be_v make_v no_o privilege_n be_v indulge_v no_o greatness_n of_o spiritual_a eminency_n be_v appendent_a as_o they_o have_v no_o great_a certainty_n in_o the_o thing_n so_o they_o have_v less_o in_o person_n and_o be_v therefore_o to_o work_v out_o their_o salvation_n with_o great_a fear_n and_o tremble_n of_o spirit_n 2._o the_o purpose_n of_o this_o consideration_n be_v that_o we_o do_v not_o judge_v of_o our_o final_a condition_n by_o any_o discourse_n of_o our_o own_o rely_v upon_o god_n secret_a counsel_n and_o predestination_n of_o eternity_n this_o be_v a_o mountain_n upon_o which_o whosoever_o climb_v like_o moses_n to_o behold_v the_o land_n of_o canaan_n at_o great_a distance_n may_v please_v his_o eye_n or_o
when_o israel_n come_v out_o of_o egypt_n and_o end_n at_o the_o 118_o inclusive_o go_v forth_o with_o his_o disciple_n over_o the_o brook_n 〈◊〉_d unto_o the_o mount_n of_o olive_n to_o a_o village_n call_v gethsemani_n where_o there_o be_v a_o garden_n into_o which_o he_o enter_v to_o pray_v together_o with_o his_o disciple_n 20._o but_o take_v peter_n james_n and_o john_n apart_o with_o he_o about_o a_o stone_n be_v cast_v from_o the_o rest_n he_o begin_v to_o be_v exceed_o sorrowful_a and_o sad_a even_o unto_o death_n for_o now_o he_o 〈◊〉_d the_o ingredient_n of_o his_o bitter_a draught_n pour_v into_o the_o chalice_n and_o the_o sight_n be_v full_a of_o horror_n and_o amazement_n he_o therefore_o fall_v on_o his_o face_n and_o pray_v o_o my_o father_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a let_v this_o cup_n pass_v from_o i_o in_o this_o prayer_n he_o fall_v into_o so_o sad_a a_o agony_n that_o the_o pain_n inflict_v by_o his_o father_n wrath_n and_o make_v active_a by_o his_o own_o apprehension_n be_v so_o great_a that_o 〈◊〉_d a_o sweat_v distil_v from_o his_o sacred_a body_n as_o great_a and_o conglobated_a as_o drop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o god_n who_o hear_v his_o prayer_n but_o will_v not_o answer_v he_o in_o kind_n send_v a_o angel_n to_o comfort_v he_o in_o the_o sadness_n which_o he_o be_v please_v not_o to_o take_v away_o but_o know_v that_o the_o drink_v this_o cup_n be_v the_o great_a end_n of_o his_o come_n into_o the_o world_n he_o lay_v aside_o all_o his_o own_o interest_n and_o devest_v himself_o of_o the_o affection_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n will_v his_o father_n will_n and_o because_o his_o father_n command_v he_o in_o desiance_n of_o sense_n and_o passion_n be_v desirous_a to_o suffer_v all_o our_o pain_n but_o as_o when_o two_o sea_n meet_v the_o billow_n 〈◊〉_d in_o ungentle_a embrace_n and_o make_v violent_a noise_n till_o have_v weary_v themselves_o into_o small_a wave_n and_o disunit_a drop_n they_o run_v quiet_o into_o one_o stream_n so_o do_v the_o spirit_n and_o nature_n of_o jesus_n assault_v each_o other_o with_o disagree_v interest_n and_o distinguish_a disputation_n till_o the_o earnestness_n of_o the_o contention_n be_v diminish_v by_o the_o demonstration_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o prevailing_n of_o grace_n which_o the_o soon_o get_v the_o victory_n because_o they_o be_v not_o to_o contest_v with_o a_o unsanctified_a or_o a_o rebellious_a nature_n but_o a_o body_n of_o affection_n which_o have_v no_o strong_a desire_n but_o of_o its_o own_o preservation_n and_o therefore_o jesus_n go_v thrice_o and_o pray_v the_o same_o prayer_n that_o if_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d the_o cup_n may_v pass_v from_o he_o and_o thrice_o make_v a_o act_n of_o resignation_n and_o in_o the_o interval_n come_v and_o find_v his_o apostle_n asleep_a gentle_o chide_v their_o incuriousness_n and_o warn_v they_o to_o watch_v and_o pray_v that_o they_o enter_v not_o into_o temptation_n till_o the_o time_n that_o the_o traitor_n come_v with_o a_o multitude_n arm_v with_o sword_n and_o staff_n from_o the_o priest_n and_o elder_n of_o the_o people_n to_o apprehend_v he_o 21._o judas_n give_v they_o the_o opportunity_n of_o the_o night_n that_o be_v all_o the_o advantage_n they_o have_v by_o he_o because_o they_o dare_v not_o seize_v he_o by_o day_n for_o fear_n of_o the_o people_n and_o he_o signify_v the_o person_n of_o his_o master_n to_o the_o soldier_n by_o a_o kiss_n and_o a_o address_n of_o seem_a civility_n but_o when_o they_o come_v towards_o he_o jesus_n say_v who_o seek_v you_o they_o say_v jesus_n of_o nazareth_n he_o say_v i_o be_o he_o but_o there_o be_v a_o divinity_n upon_o he_o that_o they_o can_v not_o seize_v he_o at_o first_o but_o as_o a_o wave_n climb_v of_o a_o rock_n be_v beat_v back_o and_o scatter_v into_o member_n till_o fall_v down_o it_o creep_v with_o gentle_a wafting_n and_o kiss_n the_o foot_n of_o the_o stony_a mountain_n and_o so_o encirle_v it_o so_o the_o soldier_n come_v at_o first_o with_o a_o rude_a attempt_n be_v twice_o repel_v by_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o person_n till_o they_o fall_v at_o his_o foot_n be_v at_o last_o admit_v to_o the_o seizure_n of_o his_o body_n have_v by_o those_o involuntary_a prostration_n confess_v his_o power_n great_a than_o they_o and_o that_o the_o lustre_n and_o influence_n of_o a_o god_n be_v great_a than_o the_o violence_n and_o rudeness_n of_o soldier_n and_o still_o they_o like_v weak_a eye_n dare_v not_o behold_v the_o glory_n of_o this_o sun_n till_o a_o cloud_n like_o a_o dark_a veil_n do_v interrupt_v the_o emission_n of_o his_o glory_n they_o can_v not_o seize_v upon_o he_o till_o they_o have_v throw_v a_o veil_n upon_o his_o holy_a face_n which_o although_o it_o be_v a_o custom_n of_o the_o easterling_n and_o of_o matt._n the_o livi._n roman_a empire_n general_o yet_o in_o this_o case_n be_v violence_n and_o necessity_n because_o a_o certain_a impetuosity_n and_o vigorousness_n of_o spirit_n and_o divinity_n issue_v from_o his_o holy_a face_n make_v they_o to_o take_v sanctuary_n in_o darkness_n and_o to_o throw_v a_o veil_n over_o he_o in_o that_o dead_a time_n of_o a_o sad_a and_o dismal_a night_n but_o peter_n a_o stout_a 〈◊〉_d galilean_a bold_a and_o zealous_a attempt_v a_o rescue_n and_o smite_v a_o servant_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o cut_v off_o his_o ear_n but_o jesus_n rebuke_v the_o intemperance_n of_o his_o passion_n and_o command_v he_o to_o put_v up_o his_o sword_n say_v all_o they_o that_o strike_v with_o the_o sword_n shall_v perish_v with_o the_o sword_n so_o put_v a_o bridle_n upon_o the_o illegal_a infliction_n and_o express_v of_o anger_n or_o revenge_n from_o a_o incompetent_a authority_n but_o jesus_n touch_v malchus_n ear_n and_o cure_v it_o 22._o when_o jesus_n have_v yield_v himself_o into_o their_o power_n and_o be_v now_o lead_v away_o by_o the_o chief_a priest_n captain_n of_o the_o temple_n elder_n of_o the_o people_n and_o soldier_n who_o all_o come_v in_o combination_n and_o covenant_n to_o surprise_v he_o his_o disciple_n flee_v and_o john_n the_o evangelist_n who_o with_o grief_n and_o a_o overrun_v fancy_n have_v forget_v to_o lay_v aside_o his_o upper_a garment_n which_o in_o festival_n they_o be_v use_v to_o put_v on_o begin_v to_o make_v escape_n but_o be_v arrest_v by_o his_o linen_n upon_o his_o bare_a body_n be_v force_v to_o leave_v that_o behind_o he_o that_o himself_o may_v escape_v his_o master_n danger_n for_o now_o be_v verify_v the_o prophetical_a say_n i_o will_v smite_v the_o shepherd_n and_o the_o sheep_n shall_v be_v scatter_v but_o peter_n follow_v afar_o off_o and_o the_o greatness_n of_o john_n love_n when_o he_o have_v master_v the_o first_o inconsideration_n of_o his_o fear_n make_v he_o to_o return_v a_o while_n after_o into_o the_o high_a priest_n hall_n 23._o jesus_n be_v first_o lead_v to_o annas_n who_o be_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o sanhedrim_n and_o have_v cognizance_n of_o prophet_n and_o public_a doctrine_n who_o therefore_o inquire_v of_o jesus_n concern_v his_o disciple_n and_o his_o discipline_n but_o he_o answer_v that_o his_o doctrine_n have_v be_v public_a or_o popular_a that_o he_o never_o teach_v in_o conventicle_n and_o therefore_o refer_v he_o to_o the_o testimony_n of_o all_o the_o people_n for_o which_o free_a answer_n a_o servant_n stand_v by_o smite_v he_o on_o the_o face_n and_o jesus_n meek_o ask_v he_o what_o evil_a he_o have_v do_v but_o annas_n without_o the_o seventy_o assessor_n can_v judge_v nothing_o and_o therefore_o send_v he_o bind_v to_o caiaphas_n who_o be_v high_a priest_n that_o year_n precedent_n of_o the_o rite_n of_o the_o temple_n as_o the_o other_o high_a priest_n be_v of_o the_o great_a council_n thither_o peter_n come_v and_o have_v admission_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o another_o disciple_n suppose_v to_o be_v john_n who_o have_v sell_v his_o possession_n in_o galilee_n to_o caiaphas_n come_v and_o dwell_v near_o mount_n zion_n but_o be_v by_o intervention_n of_o that_o bargain_n make_v know_v to_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o bring_v peter_n into_o the_o house_n where_o when_o peter_n be_v challenge_v three_o time_n by_o the_o servant_n to_o be_v a_o galilean_a and_o of_o jesus_n family_n he_o deny_v and_o forswear_v it_o till_o jesus_n look_v back_o reminded_n he_o of_o his_o prediction_n and_o the_o foulness_n of_o the_o crime_n and_o the_o cock_n crew_n for_o it_o be_v now_o the_o second_o cock-crowing_a after_o ten_o of_o the_o clock_n in_o the_o four_o watch._n and_o peter_n go_v out_o and_o weep_v bitter_o that_o he_o may_v cleanse_v his_o soul_n wash_v off_o the_o foul_a stain_n he_o have_v contract_v in_o his_o shameful_a perjury_n and_o deny_v of_o his_o lord_n and_o it_o be_v report_v of_o the_o same_o holy_a person_n that_o ever_o
thou_o at_o a_o estimate_n beyond_o all_o the_o wealth_n of_o nature_n to_o buy_v wisdom_n and_o not_o to_o sell_v it_o to_o part_v with_o all_o that_o we_o may_v enjoy_v thou_o and_o let_v no_o temptation_n abuse_v our_o understanding_n no_o loss_n vex_v we_o into_o impatience_n no_o frustration_n of_o hope_n fill_v we_o with_o indignation_n no_o pressure_n of_o calamitous_a accident_n make_v we_o angry_a at_o thou_o the_o fountain_n of_o love_n and_o blessing_n no_o covetousness_n transport_v we_o into_o the_o suburb_n of_o hell_n and_o the_o region_n of_o sin_n but_o make_v we_o to_o love_v thou_o as_o well_o as_o ever_o any_o creature_n love_v thou_o that_o we_o may_v never_o burn_v in_o any_o fire_n but_o of_o a_o holy_a love_n nor_o sink_v in_o any_o inundation_n but_o what_o proceed_v from_o penitential_a shower_n and_o suffer_v no_o violence_n but_o of_o implacable_a desire_n to_o live_v with_o thou_o and_o when_o thou_o call_v we_o to_o suffer_v with_o thou_o and_o for_o thou_o 3._o lord_n let_v i_o never_o be_v betray_v by_o myself_o or_o any_o violent_a accident_n and_o 〈◊〉_d temptation_n let_v i_o never_o be_v sell_v for_o the_o vile_a price_n of_o temporal_a gain_n or_o transient_a pleasure_n or_o a_o pleasant_a dream_n but_o since_o thou_o have_v buy_v i_o with_o a_o price_n even_o then_o when_o thou_o be_v sell_v thyself_o let_v i_o never_o be_v separate_v from_o thy_o possession_n i_o be_o thou_o buy_v with_o a_o price_n lord_n save_v i_o and_o in_o the_o day_n when_o thou_o bind_v up_o thy_o jewel_n remember_v lord_n that_o i_o cost_v thou_o as_o dear_a as_o any_o and_o therefore_o cast_v i_o not_o into_o the_o portion_n of_o judas_n but_o let_v i_o walk_v and_o dwell_v and_o bathe_v in_o the_o field_n of_o thy_o blood_n and_o pass_v from_o hence_o pure_a and_o sanctify_a into_o the_o society_n of_o the_o elect_a apostle_n receive_v my_o part_n with_o they_o and_o my_o lot_n in_o the_o communication_n of_o thy_o inheritance_n o_o gracious_a lord_n and_o dear_a saviour_n jesus_n amen_n consideration_n upon_o the_o wash_v of_o the_o disciple_n foot_n by_o 16._o jesus_n and_o his_o sermon_n of_o humility_n he_o wash_v his_o disciple_n foot_n john_n 13._o 5._o after_o that_o he_o pour_v water_n into_o a_o baso●_n and_o begin_v to_o wash_v the_o disciple_n foot_n and_o to_o wipe_v they_o with_o the_o towel_n wherewith_o he_o be_v gird_v 6._o then_o come_v he_o to_o simon_n peter_n &_o peter_n say_v unto_o he_o lord_n do_v thou_o wash_v my_o foot_n the_o institution_n of_o his_o last_o supper_n mark_n 14._o 22._o and_o as_o they_o do_v eat_v lesus_fw-la take_v breed_v &_o bless_v &_o break_v it_o &_o give_v to_o they_o &_o say_v take_v eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o he_o take_v y_o e_o cup_n &_o when_o he_o have_v give_v thanks_o he_o give_v it_o to_o they_o &_o they_o all_o drink_v of_o it_o in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o communion_n 1._o the_o holy_a jesus_n go_v now_o to_o eat_v his_o last_o paschal_n supper_n and_o to_o finish_v the_o work_n of_o his_o legation_n and_o to_o fulfil_v that_o part_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n in_o every_o of_o its_o small_a and_o most_o minute_n particularity_n in_o which_o also_o the_o action_n be_v significant_a of_o spiritual_a duty_n which_o we_o may_v transfer_v from_o the_o letter_n to_o the_o spirit_n in_o our_o own_o instance_n that_o as_o jesus_n eat_v the_o paschal_n lamb_n with_o a_o staff_n in_o his_o hand_n with_o his_o loin_n gird_v with_o sandal_n on_o his_o foot_n in_o great_a haste_n with_o unlevened_a bread_n and_o with_o bitter_a herb_n so_o we_o also_o shall_v do_v all_o our_o service_n according_a to_o the_o signification_n of_o these_o symbol_n lean_v upon_o the_o cross_n of_o jesus_n for_o a_o staff_n and_o bear_v the_o rod_n of_o his_o government_n with_o loin_n gird_v with_o angelical_a chastity_n with_o shoe_n on_o our_o foot_n that_o so_o we_o may_v guard_v and_o have_v custody_n over_o our_o affection_n and_o be_v shod_a with_o the_o preparation_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n eat_v in_o haste_n as_o become_v person_n hunger_a and_o thirst_v after_o righteousness_n do_v the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n zealous_o and_o fervent_o without_o the_o leven_a of_o malice_n and_o secular_a interest_n with_o bitter_a herb_n of_o self-denial_n and_o mortification_n of_o our_o sensual_a and_o inordinate_a desire_n the_o sense_n and_o mystery_n of_o the_o whole_a act_n with_o all_o its_o circumstance_n be_v that_o we_o obey_v all_o the_o sanction_n of_o the_o divine_a law_n and_o that_o every_o part_n of_o our_o religion_n be_v pure_a and_o peaceable_a chaste_a and_o obedient_a confident_a in_o god_n and_o diffident_a in_o ourselves_o frequent_a and_o zealous_a humble_a and_o resign_v just_a and_o charitable_a and_o there_o will_v not_o easy_o be_v want_v any_o just_a circumstance_n to_o hallow_v and_o consecrate_v the_o action_n 2._o when_o the_o holy_a jesus_n have_v finish_v his_o last_o mosaic_a rite_n he_o descend_v to_o give_v example_n of_o the_o first_o fruit_n of_o evangelical_n grace_n he_o rise_v from_o supper_n lay_v aside_o his_o garment_n like_o a_o servant_n and_o with_o all_o the_o circumstance_n of_o a_o humble_a ministry_n wash_v the_o foot_n of_o his_o disciple_n 〈◊〉_d begin_v at_o the_o first_o s._n peter_n until_o he_o come_v to_o judas_n the_o traitor_n that_o we_o may_v in_o one_o scheme_n see_v a_o rare_a conjunction_n of_o charity_n and_o humility_n of_o self-denial_n and_o indifferency_n represent_v by_o a_o person_n glorious_a and_o great_a their_o lord_n and_o master_n sad_a and_o trouble_a and_o he_o choose_v to_o wash_v their_o 〈◊〉_d foot_n rather_o than_o their_o head_n that_o he_o may_v have_v the_o opportunity_n of_o a_o more_o humble_a posture_n and_o a_o more_o apt_a signification_n of_o his_o charity_n thus_o god_n lay_v every_o thing_n aside_o that_o he_o may_v serve_v his_o servant_n heaven_n stoop_v to_o earth_n and_o one_o abyss_n call_v upon_o another_o and_o the_o misery_n of_o man_n which_o be_v next_o to_o infinite_a be_v excel_v by_o a_o mercy_n equal_a to_o the_o immensity_n of_o god_n and_o this_o wash_n of_o their_o foot_n which_o be_v a_o accustom_a civility_n and_o entertainment_n of_o honour_a stranger_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o meal_n christ_n defer_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o paschal_n supper_n that_o it_o may_v be_v the_o preparatory_a to_o the_o second_o which_o he_o intend_v shall_v be_v festival_n to_o all_o the_o world_n s._n peter_n be_v trouble_v that_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o lord_n shall_v wash_v his_o servant_n foot_n those_o hand_n which_o have_v open_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o blind_a and_o cure_v leper_n and_o heal_v all_o disease_n and_o when_o lift_v up_o to_o heaven_n be_v omnipotent_a and_o can_v restore_v life_n to_o dead_a and_o bury_v person_n he_o count_v it_o a_o great_a indecency_n for_o he_o to_o suffer_v it_o but_o it_o be_v no_o more_o than_o be_v necessary_a for_o they_o have_v but_o late_o be_v earnest_n in_o dispute_n for_o precedency_n and_o it_o be_v of_o itself_o so_o apt_a to_o swell_v into_o tumour_n and_o inconvenience_n that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v cure_v but_o by_o some_o prodigy_n of_o example_n and_o miracle_n of_o humility_n which_o the_o holy_a jesus_n offer_v to_o they_o in_o this_o express_a call_v they_o to_o learn_v some_o great_a lesson_n a_o lesson_n which_o god_n descend_v from_o heaven_n to_o earth_n from_o riches_n to_o poverty_n from_o essential_a innocence_n to_o the_o disreputation_n of_o a_o sinner_n from_o a_o master_n to_o a_o servant_n to_o learn_v we_o that_o be_v that_o we_o shall_v esteem_v ourselves_o but_o just_a as_o we_o be_v low_a sinful_a miserable_a needy_a and_o unworthy_a it_o seem_v it_o be_v a_o great_a thing_n that_o man_n shall_v come_v to_o have_v just_a and_o equal_a thought_n of_o himself_o that_o god_n use_v such_o powerful_a art_n to_o transmit_v this_o lesson_n and_o engrave_v it_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n and_o if_o the_o receipt_n fail_v we_o be_v eternal_o lose_v in_o the_o mist_n of_o vanity_n and_o enter_v into_o the_o condition_n of_o those_o angel_n who_o pride_n transform_v and_o spoil_v into_o the_o condition_n of_o devil_n and_o upon_o consideration_n of_o this_o great_a example_n bernard_n guericus_n a_o good_a man_n cry_v out_o thou_o have_v overcome_v o_o lord_n thou_o have_v overcome_v my_o pride_n this_o example_n have_v master_v i_o i_o deliver_v myself_o up_o into_o thy_o hand_n never_o to_o receive_v liberty_n or_o exaltation_n but_o in_o the_o condition_n of_o thy_o humble_a servant_n 3._o and_o to_o this_o purpose_n s._n bernard_n have_v a_o affectionate_a and_o devout_a consideration_n say_v that_o some_o of_o the_o angel_n as_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v create_v have_v a_o ambition_n to_o
heathless_a body_n become_v fuel_n to_o a_o fever_n and_o increase_v the_o distemperature_n from_o indisposition_n to_o a_o sharp_a disease_n and_o from_o thence_o to_o the_o margin_n of_o the_o grave_n but_o it_o be_v otherwise_o in_o saul_n who_o jesus_n throw_v to_o the_o ground_n with_o a_o more_o angry_a sound_n than_o these_o persecutor_n but_o saul_n rise_v a_o saint_n and_o they_o persist_v devil_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n distinguish_v the_o event_n the_o prayer_n o_o holy_a jesus_n make_v i_o by_o thy_o example_n to_o conform_v to_o the_o will_n of_o that_o eternal_a god_n who_o be_v our_o father_n merciful_a and_o gracious_a that_o i_o may_v choose_v all_o those_o accident_n which_o his_o providence_n have_v actual_o dispose_v to_o i_o that_o i_o may_v know_v no_o desire_n but_o his_o command_n and_o his_o will_n and_o that_o in_o all_o affliction_n i_o may_v fly_v thither_o for_o mercy_n pardon_n and_o support_v and_o may_v wait_v for_o deliverance_n in_o such_o time_n and_o manner_n which_o the_o father_n have_v reserve_v in_o his_o own_o power_n and_o gracious_o dispense_v according_a to_o his_o infinite_a wisdom_n and_o compassion_n holy_a jesus_n give_v i_o the_o gift_n and_o spirit_n of_o prayer_n and_o do_v thou_o by_o thy_o gracious_a intercession_n supply_v my_o ignorances_n and_o passionate_a desire_n and_o imperfect_a choice_n procure_v and_o give_v to_o i_o such_o return_n of_o favour_n which_o may_v support_v my_o need_n and_o serve_v the_o end_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o spirit_n which_o thy_o wisdom_n choose_v and_o thy_o passion_n have_v purchase_v and_o thy_o grace_n love_v to_o bestow_v upon_o all_o thy_o saint_n and_o servant_n amen_n ii_o eternal_a god_n sweet_a jesus_n who_o do_v receive_v judas_n with_o the_o affection_n of_o a_o saviour_n and_o suffer_v he_o to_o kiss_v thy_o cheek_n with_o the_o serenity_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o god_n and_o do_v permit_v the_o soldier_n to_o bind_v thou_o with_o patience_n exemplary_a to_o all_o age_n of_o martyr_n and_o do_v cure_v the_o wound_n of_o thy_o enemy_n with_o the_o charity_n of_o a_o parent_n and_o the_o tenderness_n of_o a_o infinite_a pity_n o_o kiss_v i_o with_o the_o kiss_n of_o thy_o mouth_n embrace_v i_o with_o the_o entertainment_n of_o a_o gracious_a lord_n and_o let_v my_o soul_n dwell_v and_o feast_v in_o thou_o who_o be_v the_o repository_n of_o eternal_a sweetness_n and_o refreshment_n bind_v i_o o_o lord_n with_o those_o band_n which_o tie_v thou_o fast_o the_o chain_n of_o love_n that_o such_o holy_a union_n may_v dissolve_v the_o cord_n of_o vanity_n and_o confine_v the_o bold_a pretension_n of_o usurp_a passion_n and_o imprison_v all_o extravagancy_n of_o a_o impertinent_a spirit_n and_o lead_v sin_n captive_a to_o the_o dominion_n of_o grace_n and_o sanctify_a reason_n that_o i_o also_o may_v imitate_v all_o the_o part_n of_o thy_o holy_a passion_n and_o may_v by_o thy_o band_n get_v my_o liberty_n by_o thy_o kiss_n enkindle_v charity_n by_o the_o touch_n of_o thy_o hand_n and_o the_o breath_n of_o thy_o mouth_n have_v all_o my_o wound_n cure_v and_o restore_v to_o the_o integrity_n of_o a_o holy_a penitent_n and_o the_o purity_n of_o innocence_n that_o i_o may_v love_v thou_o and_o please_v thou_o and_o live_v with_o thou_o for_o ever_o o_o holy_a and_o sweet_a jesus_n amen_n consideration_n upon_o the_o scourge_v and_o other_o accident_n happen_v from_o the_o apprehension_n till_o the_o crucifixion_n of_o jesus_n christ_n bring_v before_o the_o highpreist_n john_n 18_o 12._o then_o the_o band_n and_o the_o captain_n and_o the_o officer_n of_o the_o jew_n take_v jesus_n and_o bind_v he_o 25._o and_o lead_v he_o away_o to_o anna_n first_o for_o he_o be_v father-in-law_n to_o cajaphas_n which_o be_v highpreist_n that_o same_o year_n christ_n arraign_v before_o herod_n luk._n 23._o 7._o 8._o 11._o and_o assoon_o as_o he_o know_v that_o he_o belong_v to_o herod_n jurisdiction_n he_o send_v he_o to_o herod_n 8._o and_o when_o herod_n see_v jesus_n he_o be_v exceed_v glad_a 11._o and_o herod_n with_o his_o man_n of_o war_n set_v he_o at_o nought_o and_o mock_v he_o and_o array_v he_o in_o a_o gorgeous_a robe_n and_o send_v he_o again_o to_o pilate_n 1._o the_o house_n of_o annas_n stand_v in_o the_o mount_n zion_n and_o in_o the_o way_n to_o the_o house_n of_o caiaphas_n and_o thither_o he_o be_v lead_v as_o to_o the_o first_o stage_n of_o their_o triumph_n for_o their_o surprise_n of_o a_o person_n so_o fear_v and_o desire_v and_o there_o a_o naughty_a person_n smite_v the_o 〈◊〉_d jesus_n upon_o the_o face_n for_o say_v to_o annas_n that_o he_o have_v make_v his_o doctrine_n public_a and_o that_o all_o the_o people_n be_v able_a to_o give_v account_n of_o it_o to_o who_o the_o lamb_n of_o god_n 〈◊〉_d as_o much_o meekness_n and_o patience_n in_o his_o answer_n as_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o annas_n he_o have_v 〈◊〉_d prudence_n and_o modesty_n for_o now_o that_o they_o have_v take_v jesus_n they_o want_v a_o crime_n to_o object_n against_o he_o and_o therefore_o be_v desirous_a to_o snatch_v occasion_n from_o his_o discourse_n to_o which_o they_o resolve_v to_o tempt_v he_o by_o question_n and_o affront_n but_o his_o answer_n be_v general_a and_o indefinite_a safe_a and_o true_a enough_o to_o acquit_v his_o doctrine_n from_o suspicion_n of_o secret_a design_n and_o yet_o secure_a against_o their_o present_a snare_n for_o now_o himself_o who_o always_o have_v the_o innocence_n of_o dove_n be_v to_o join_v with_o it_o the_o prudence_n and_o wariness_n of_o serpent_n not_o to_o prevent_v death_n for_o that_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o suffer_v but_o that_o they_o may_v be_v destitute_a of_o all_o appearance_n of_o a_o just_a cause_n on_o his_o part_n here_o it_o be_v that_o judas_n receive_v his_o money_n and_o here_o that_o holy_a face_n which_o be_v design_v to_o be_v that_o object_n in_o the_o behold_n of_o which_o much_o of_o the_o celestial_a glory_n do_v consist_v that_o face_n which_o the_o angel_n stare_v upon_o with_o wonder_n like_o infant_n at_o a_o bright_a sunbeam_n be_v smite_v extrajudicial_o by_o a_o incompetent_a person_n with_o circumstance_n of_o despite_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o a_o judge_n in_o a_o full_a assembly_n and_o none_o reprove_v the_o insolency_n and_o the_o cruelty_n of_o the_o affront_n for_o they_o resolve_v to_o use_v he_o as_o they_o use_v wolf_n and_o tiger_n with_o all_o thing_n that_o may_v be_v destructive_a violent_a and_o impious_a and_o in_o this_o the_o injury_n be_v heighten_v because_o the_o blow_n 〈◊〉_d be_v say_v to_o be_v give_v by_o malchus_n a_o idumaean_a slave_n and_o therefore_o a_o contemptible_a person_n but_o far_o more_o unworthy_a by_o his_o ingratitude_n for_o so_o he_o repay_v the_o holy_a jesus_n for_o work_v a_o miracle_n and_o heal_a his_o ear_n but_o so_o the_o scripture_n be_v fulfil_v he_o shall_v 1._o give_v his_o body_n to_o the_o smiter_n and_o his_o cheek_n to_o the_o nipper_n say_v the_o prophet_n isaiah_n and_o they_o shall_v smite_v the_o cheek_n of_o the_o judge_n of_o israel_n say_v micah_n and_o this_o very_a circumstance_n of_o the_o passion_n lactantius_n 18._o affirm_v to_o have_v be_v foretell_v by_o the_o erythraean_a sibyl_n but_o no_o meekness_n or_o indifferency_n can_v engage_v our_o lord_n not_o to_o protest_v his_o innocency_n 〈◊〉_d and_o though_o follow_v his_o step_n we_o must_v walk_v in_o the_o region_n of_o patience_n and_o tranquillity_n and_o admirable_a toleration_n of_o injury_n yet_o we_o may_v represent_v such_o defence_n of_o ourselves_o which_o by_o not_o resist_v the_o sentence_n may_v testify_v that_o our_o suffering_n be_v undeserved_a and_o if_o our_o innocency_n will_v not_o preserve_v our_o life_n it_o will_v advance_v our_o title_n to_o a_o better_a and_o every_o good_a cause_n ill_o judge_v shall_v be_v bring_v to_o another_o tribunal_n to_o receive_v a_o just_a and_o unerring_a sentence_n 2._o anna_n have_v suffer_v this_o unworthy_a usage_n towards_o a_o person_n so_o excellent_a send_v he_o away_o to_o caiphas_n who_o have_v former_o in_o a_o full_a council_n resolve_v he_o shall_v die_v yet_o 〈◊〉_d now_o palliate_v the_o design_n with_o the_o scheme_n of_o a_o tribunal_n they_o seek_v out_o for_o witness_n and_o the_o witness_n be_v to_o seek_v for_o allegation_n and_o when_o they_o find_v they_o they_o be_v to_o seek_v for_o proof_n and_o those_o proof_n be_v to_o seek_v for_o unity_n and_o consent_n and_o nothing_o be_v ready_a for_o their_o purpose_n but_o they_o be_v force_v to_o use_v the_o semblance_n of_o a_o judicial_a process_n that_o because_o they_o be_v to_o make_v use_n of_o pilat_n authority_n to_o put_v he_o to_o death_n they_o may_v persuade_v pilate_n to_o accept_v of_o their_o examination_n and_o conviction_n without_o far_a enquiry_n but_o such_o
he_o bear_v they_o upon_o his_o tender_a body_n with_o a_o even_a and_o excellent_a and_o dispassionate_a spirit_n offer_v up_o these_o beginning_n of_o suffering_n to_o his_o father_n to_o obtain_v pardon_n even_o for_o they_o that_o injure_v he_o and_o for_o all_o the_o world_n 6._o judas_n now_o see_v that_o this_o matter_n go_v far_a than_o he_o intend_v it_o repent_v of_o his_o fact_n for_o although_o evil_a person_n be_v in_o the_o progress_n of_o their_o iniquity_n invite_v on_o by_o new_a argument_n and_o support_v by_o confidence_n and_o a_o careless_a spirit_n yet_o when_o iniquity_n be_v come_v to_o the_o height_n or_o so_o great_a a_o proportion_n that_o it_o be_v apt_a to_o produce_v despair_n or_o a_o intolerable_a condition_n than_o the_o devil_n suffer_v the_o conscience_n to_o thaw_v and_o grow_v tender_a but_o it_o be_v the_o tenderness_n of_o a_o bile_n it_o be_v soreness_n rather_o and_o a_o new_a disease_n and_o either_o it_o come_v when_o the_o time_n of_o repentance_n be_v past_a or_o lead_v to_o some_o act_n which_o shall_v make_v the_o pardon_n to_o be_v impossible_a and_o so_o it_o happen_v here_o for_o judas_n either_o impatient_a of_o the_o shame_n or_o of_o the_o sting_n be_v thrust_v on_o to_o despair_v of_o pardon_n with_o a_o violence_n as_o hasty_a and_o as_o great_a as_o be_v his_o need_n and_o despair_n be_v very_o often_o use_v like_o the_o bolt_n and_o bar_n of_o hell-gate_n it_o 〈◊〉_d upon_o they_o that_o have_v enter_v into_o the_o suburb_n of_o eternal_a death_n by_o a_o habitual_a sin_n and_o it_o secure_v they_o against_o all_o retreat_n and_o the_o devil_n be_v forward_o enough_o to_o bring_v a_o man_n to_o repentance_n provide_v it_o be_v too_o late_a and_o esau_n weep_v bitter_o and_o repent_v he_o and_o the_o five_o foolish_a virgin_n lift_v up_o their_o voice_n aloud_o when_o the_o gate_n be_v shut_v and_o in_o hell_n man_n shall_v repent_v to_o all_o eternity_n but_o i_o consider_v the_o very_a great_a folly_n and_o infelicity_n of_o judas_n it_o be_v at_o midnight_n he_o receive_v his_o money_n in_o the_o house_n of_o annas_n betimes_o in_o that_o morning_n he_o repent_v his_o bargain_n he_o throw_v the_o money_n back_o again_o but_o his_o sin_n stick_v close_o and_o it_o be_v think_v to_o a_o 〈◊〉_d eternity_n such_o be_v the_o purchase_n of_o treason_n and_o the_o reward_n of_o covetousness_n it_o be_v cheap_a in_o its_o offer_n momentany_a in_o its_o possession_n unsatisfy_v in_o the_o fruition_n uncertain_a in_o the_o stay_n sudden_a in_o its_o 〈◊〉_d horrid_a in_o the_o remembrance_n and_o a_o ruin_n a_o certain_a and_o miserable_a ruin_n be_v in_o the_o event_n when_o judas_n come_v in_o that_o sad_a condition_n and_o tell_v his_o miserable_a story_n to_o they_o that_o set_v he_o on_o work_n they_o 〈◊〉_d he_o go_v away_o unpitied_a he_o have_v serve_v their_o end_n in_o betray_v his_o lord_n and_o those_o that_o hire_v such_o servant_n use_v to_o leave_v they_o in_o the_o disaster_n to_o shame_n and_o to_o sorrow_n and_o so_o do_v the_o priest_n but_o take_v the_o money_n and_o 〈◊〉_d to_o put_v it_o into_o the_o treasury_n because_o it_o be_v the_o price_n 〈◊〉_d of_o blood_n but_o they_o make_v no_o scruple_n to_o take_v it_o from_o the_o treasury_n to_o buy_v that_o blood_n any_o thing_n seem_v lawful_a that_o serve_v the_o end_n of_o ambitious_a and_o bloody_a person_n and_o then_o they_o be_v scrupulous_a in_o their_o case_n of_o conscience_n when_o nothing_o of_o interest_n do_v intervene_v for_o evil_a man_n make_v religion_n the_o servant_n of_o interest_n and_o sometime_o weak_a man_n think_v that_o it_o be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o 〈◊〉_d religion_n and_o suspect_v that_o all_o of_o it_o be_v a_o design_n because_o many_o great_a politic_n make_v it_o so_o the_o end_n of_o the_o tragedy_n be_v that_o judas_n die_v with_o a_o ignoble_a death_n mark_v with_o the_o circumstance_n of_o 17._o a_o horrid_a judgement_n and_o perish_v by_o the_o most_o infamous_a hand_n in_o the_o world_n that_o be_v by_o his_o own_o which_o if_o it_o be_v confront_v against_o the_o excellent_a spirit_n of_o s._n peter_n who_o do_v a_o act_n as_o contradictory_n to_o his_o honour_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n as_o can_v be_v easy_o imagine_v yet_o take_v sanctuary_n in_o the_o arm_n of_o his_o lord_n he_o lodge_v in_o his_o heart_n for_o ever_o and_o become_v a_o example_n to_o all_o the_o world_n of_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o divine_a mercy_n and_o the_o efficacy_n of_o a_o holy_a hope_n and_o a_o hearty_a timely_a and_o a_o operative_a repentance_n 7._o 〈◊〉_d now_o all_o thing_n be_v ready_a for_o the_o purpose_n the_o high_a priest_n and_o all_o his_o council_n go_v along_o with_o the_o holy_a jesus_n to_o the_o house_n of_o pilate_n hope_v he_o will_v verify_v their_o sentence_n and_o bring_v it_o to_o execution_n that_o they_o may_v 〈◊〉_d be_v rid_v of_o their_o fear_n and_o enjoy_v 〈◊〉_d their_o sin_n and_o their_o reputation_n quiet_o s._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o high_a priest_n cause_v the_o holy_a jesus_n to_o be_v lead_v with_o a_o cord_n about_o his_o neck_n and_o in_o memory_n of_o that_o the_o priest_n for_o many_o age_n 〈◊〉_d a_o stole_n about_o they_o but_o the_o jew_n do_v it_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o nation_n to_o signify_v he_o be_v condemn_v to_o death_n they_o desire_v pilate_n that_o he_o will_v crucify_v he_o they_o have_v 〈◊〉_d he_o worthy_a and_o when_o pilate_n inquire_v into_o the_o particular_n they_o give_v he_o a_o general_a and_o a_o indefinite_a answer_n if_o he_o be_v not_o guilty_a we_o will_v not_o have_v bring_v he_o 〈◊〉_d thou_o they_o intend_v not_o to_o make_v pilate_n judge_n of_o the_o cause_n but_o 〈◊〉_d of_o their_o cruelty_n but_o pilate_n have_v not_o learned_a to_o be_v guide_v by_o a_o implicit_a faith_n of_o such_o person_n which_o he_o know_v to_o be_v malicious_a and_o violent_a and_o therefore_o still_o call_v for_o instance_n and_o argument_n of_o their_o accusation_n and_o that_o all_o the_o world_n may_v see_v with_o how_o great_a unworthiness_n they_o prosecute_v the_o 〈◊〉_d they_o chief_o there_o accuse_v he_o of_o such_o crime_n upon_o which_o themselves_o condemn_v he_o not_o and_o which_o they_o know_v to_o be_v false_a but_o yet_o likely_a to_o move_v pilate_n if_o he_o have_v be_v passionate_a or_o inconsiderate_a in_o his_o sentence_n he_o offer_v to_o make_v himself_o asleep_o king_n this_o 〈◊〉_d happen_v at_o the_o entry_n of_o the_o praetorium_n for_o the_o 〈◊〉_d who_o make_v no_o conscience_n of_o kill_v the_o king_n of_o heaven_n make_v a_o conscience_n of_o the_o external_a custom_n and_o ceremony_n of_o their_o law_n which_o have_v in_o they_o no_o interior_a sanctity_n which_o be_v apt_a to_o separate_v they_o 〈◊〉_d the_o nation_n and_o remark_n they_o with_o character_n of_o religion_n and_o abstraction_n it_o will_v defile_v they_o to_o go_v to_o a_o roman_a forum_n 〈◊〉_d a_o capital_a action_n be_v to_o be_v judge_v and_o yet_o the_o effusion_n of_o the_o best_a blood_n in_o the_o world_n be_v not_o esteem_v against_o their_o 〈◊〉_d so_o violent_a and_o blind_a be_v the_o spirit_n of_o malice_n which_o turn_v humanity_n into_o 〈◊〉_d wisdom_n into_o craft_n diligence_n into_o subornation_n and_o religion_n into_o superstition_n 8._o two_o other_o article_n they_o allege_v against_o he_o but_o the_o first_o concern_v not_o pilate_n and_o the_o second_o be_v involve_v in_o the_o three_o and_o therefore_o he_o choose_v to_o examine_v he_o upon_o this_o only_a of_o his_o be_v a_o king_n to_o which_o the_o holy_a jesus_n answer_v that_o it_o be_v true_a he_o be_v 〈◊〉_d king_n indeed_o but_o not_o of_o this_o world_n his_o throne_n be_v heaven_n the_o angel_n be_v his_o courtier_n and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d creation_n be_v his_o subject_n his_o regiment_n be_v spiritual_a his_o 〈◊〉_d be_v the_o court_n of_o conscience_n and_o church-tribunal_n and_o at_o doomsday_n the_o cloud_n the_o tribute_n which_o he_o demand_n be_v conformity_n to_o his_o law_n faith_n 〈◊〉_d and_o charity_n no_o other_o gabel_n but_o the_o duty_n of_o a_o holy_a spirit_n and_o the_o express_v of_o a_o religious_a worship_n and_o obedient_a will_n and_o a_o consent_a understanding_n and_o in_o all_o this_o pilate_n think_v the_o interest_n of_o 〈◊〉_d be_v not_o invade_v for_o certain_a it_o be_v the_o discipline_n of_o jesus_n confirm_v it_o much_o and_o support_v it_o by_o the_o strong_a pillar_n and_o here_o pilate_n see_v how_o impertinent_a and_o malicious_a their_o accusation_n be_v and_o we_o who_o declaim_v against_o the_o unjust_a proceed_n of_o the_o jew_n against_o our_o dear_a lord_n shall_v do_v well_o to_o take_v care_n that_o we_o in_o accuse_v any_o of_o our_o brethren_n either_o with_o malicious_a purpose_n or_o with_o
disorder_n and_o division_n to_o command_v or_o countermand_v as_o occasion_n be_v be_v vest_v with_o a_o extraordinary_a authority_n and_o power_n of_o dispose_v thing_n for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n this_o office_n the_o apostle_n never_o exercise_v in_o its_o full_a extent_n and_o latitude_n during_o christ_n residence_n upon_o earth_n for_o though_o upon_o their_o election_n he_o send_v they_o forth_o to_o preach_v and_o to_o baptise_v yet_o this_o be_v only_o a_o narrow_a and_o temporary_a employment_n and_o they_o quick_o return_v to_o their_o private_a station_n the_o main_a power_n be_v still_o execute_v and_o administer_v by_o christ_n himself_o the_o complete_a exercise_n whereof_o be_v not_o actual_o devolve_v upon_o they_o till_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o leave_v the_o world_n for_o than_o it_o be_v that_o he_o tell_v they_o as_o my_o father_n have_v send_v i_o even_o so_o send_v i_o you_o 23._o receive_v you_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o soever_o sin_n you_o remit_v they_o be_v remit_v and_o who_o soever_o sin_n you_o retain_v they_o be_v retain_v whereby_o he_o confer_v in_o some_o proportion_n the_o same_o authority_n upon_o they_o which_o he_o himself_o have_v derive_v from_o his_o father_n fisth_o this_o commission_n give_v to_o the_o apostle_n be_v unlimited_a and_o universal_a not_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o power_n as_o enable_v they_o to_o discharge_v all_o act_n of_o religion_n relate_v either_o to_o ministry_n or_o government_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o place_n not_o confine_v they_o to_o this_o savil._n or_o that_o particular_a province_n but_o leave_v they_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o their_o diocese_n to_o preach_v in_o they_o be_v destinati_fw-la nationibus_fw-la magistri_fw-la in_o 208._o tertullian_n phrase_n design_v to_o be_v the_o master_n and_o instructor_n of_o all_o nation_n so_o run_v their_o commission_n 15._o go_v you_o into_o all_o the_o world_n and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o every_o creature_n that_o be_v to_o all_o man_n the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o evangelist_n answer_v to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d among_o the_o jew_n to_o all_o creature_n whereby_o they_o use_v to_o denote_v all_o man_n in_o general_a but_o especial_o the_o gentile_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o jew_n indeed_o while_o our_o saviour_n live_v the_o apostolical_a ministry_n extend_v no_o further_a than_o judaea_n but_o he_o be_v go_v to_o heaven_n the_o partition-wall_n be_v break_v down_o and_o their_o way_n be_v open_a into_o all_o place_n and_o country_n and_o herein_o how_o admirable_o do_v the_o christian_a oeconomy_n transcend_v the_o jewish_a dispensation_n the_o preach_v of_o the_o prophet_n like_o the_o 171._o light_n that_o come_v in_o at_o the_o window_n be_v confine_v only_o to_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n while_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v like_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o firmament_n that_o diffuse_v its_o beam_n and_o propagate_v its_o heat_n and_o influence_n into_o all_o quarter_n of_o the_o world_n their_o sound_n go_v out_o into_o all_o the_o earth_n and_o their_o word_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v true_a for_o the_o more_o prudent_a and_o orderly_a management_n of_o thing_n they_o be_v general_o say_v by_o the_o ancient_n to_o have_v divide_v the_o world_n into_o so_o many_o quarter_n and_o portion_n to_o which_o they_o be_v several_o to_o betake_v themselves_o peter_n to_o pontus_n galatia_n cappadocia_n etc._n etc._n s._n john_n to_o asia_n s._n andrew_n to_o scythia_n etc._n etc._n but_o they_o do_v not_o strict_o tie_v themselves_o to_o those_o particular_a province_n that_o be_v assign_v to_o they_o but_o as_o occasion_n be_v make_v excursion_n into_o other_o part_n though_o for_o the_o main_a they_o have_v a_o more_o peculiar_a inspection_n over_o those_o part_n that_o be_v allot_v to_o they_o usual_o reside_v at_o some_o principal_a city_n of_o the_o province_n as_o s._n john_n at_o ephesus_n s._n philip_n at_o hierapolis_n etc._n etc._n whence_o they_o may_v have_v a_o more_o convenient_a prospect_n of_o affair_n round_o about_o they_o and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o these_o place_n more_o peculiar_o get_v the_o title_n of_o apostolical_a church_n because_o first_o plant_v or_o eminent_o water_v and_o cultivate_v by_o some_o apostle_n matrices_fw-la &_o originales_fw-la fidei_fw-la as_o 209._o tertullian_n call_v they_o mother-churche_n and_o the_o original_n of_o the_o faith_n because_o here_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n be_v first_o sow_v and_o hence_o plant_v and_o propagate_v to_o the_o country_n round_o about_o ecclesias_fw-la apud_fw-la unamquamque_fw-la civitatem_fw-la condiderunt_fw-la à_fw-la quibus_fw-la traducem_fw-la fidei_fw-la &_o semina_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la caeterae_fw-la exinde_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la mutuatae_fw-la sunt_fw-la as_o his_o own_o word_n 208._o be_v vi_o in_o pursuance_n of_o this_o general_a commission_n we_o find_v the_o apostle_n not_o long_o after_o our_o lord_n ascension_n traverse_v almost_o all_o part_n of_o the_o then_o know_a world_n s._n andrew_n in_o scythia_n and_o those_o northern_a country_n s._n thomas_n and_o bartholomew_n in_o india_n s._n simon_n and_o s._n mark_v in_o afric_n egypt_n and_o the_o part_n of_o libya_n and_o mauritania_n s._n paul_n and_o probable_o peter_n and_o some_o other_o in_o the_o far_a region_n of_o the_o west_n and_o all_o this_o do_v in_o the_o space_n of_o less_o than_o forty_o year_n viz._n before_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o jewish_a state_n by_o titus_n and_o the_o roman_a army_n for_o so_o our_o lord_n have_v express_o foretell_v that_o the_o gospel_n of_o 14._o the_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v preach_v in_o all_o the_o world_n for_o a_o witness_n unto_o all_o nation_n before_o the_o end_n come_v that_o be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o jewish_a state_n which_o the_o apostle_n a_o little_a before_o have_v call_v the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o shut_n up_o or_o consummation_n of_o the_o age_n 3._o the_o put_v a_o final_a period_n to_o that_o present_a state_n and_o dispensation_n that_o the_o jew_n be_v under_o and_o indeed_o strange_a it_o be_v to_o consider_v that_o in_o so_o few_o year_n these_o evangelical_n messenger_n shall_v overrun_v all_o country_n with_o what_o a_o incredible_a swiftness_n do_v the_o christian_a faith_n like_o lightning_n pierce_v from_o east_n to_o west_n and_o diffuse_v itself_o over_o all_o quarter_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o not_o only_o unassisted_a by_o any_o secular_a advantage_n but_o in_o defiance_n of_o the_o most_o fierce_a and_o potent_a opposition_n which_o every_o where_o set_v itself_o against_o it_o it_o be_v true_a the_o imposture_n of_o muhammed_n in_o a_o very_a little_a time_n gain_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o east_n but_o beside_o that_o this_o be_v not_o comparable_a to_o the_o universal_a spread_a of_o christianity_n his_o doctrine_n be_v calculate_v on_o purpose_n to_o gratify_v man_n lust_n and_o especial_o to_o comply_v with_o the_o loose_a and_o wanton_a manner_n of_o the_o east_n and_o which_o be_v above_o all_o have_v the_o sword_n to_o hew_v out_o its_o way_n before_o it_o and_o we_o know_v how_o ready_a even_o without_o force_n in_o all_o change_n and_o revolution_n of_o the_o world_n the_o conquer_a have_v be_v to_o follow_v the_o religion_n of_o the_o conqueror_n whereas_o the_o apostle_n have_v no_o visible_a advantage_n nay_o have_v all_o the_o enrage_a power_n of_o the_o world_n to_o contend_v against_o they_o and_o yet_o in_o despite_n of_o all_o go_v on_o in_o triumph_n and_o quick_o make_v their_o way_n into_o those_o place_n where_o for_o so_o many_o age_n no_o other_o conquest_n ever_o come_v those_o part_n of_o britain_n as_o 189._o tertullian_n observe_v which_o be_v unconquerable_a and_o unapproachable_a by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o roman_a army_n submit_v their_o neck_n to_o the_o yoke_n of_o christ._n a_o mighty_a evidence_n as_o he_o there_o argue_v of_o christ_n divinity_n and_o that_o he_o be_v the_o true_a messiah_n and_o indeed_o no_o reasonable_a account_n can_v be_v give_v of_o the_o strange_a and_o successful_a progress_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n in_o those_o first_o age_n of_o it_o but_o that_o it_o be_v the_o birth_n of_o heaven_n and_o have_v a_o divine_a and_o invisible_a power_n go_v along_o with_o it_o to_o succeed_v and_o prosper_v it_o 726._o s._n chrysoslom_o discourse_v this_o argument_n at_o large_a some_o of_o who_o elegant_a reason_n i_o shall_v here_o transcribe_v he_o tell_v the_o gentile_a with_o who_o he_o be_v dispute_v that_o he_o will_v not_o prove_v christ_n deity_n by_o a_o demonstration_n from_o heaven_n by_o his_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n his_o great_a and_o stupendous_a miracle_n his_o raise_v the_o dead_a cure_v the_o blind_a expelling_a devil_n nor_o from_o the_o mighty_a promise_n of_o a_o future_a state_n and_o the_o resurrection_n of_o
the_o dead_a which_o a_o infidel_n may_v easy_o not_o only_a question_n but_o deny_v but_o from_o what_o be_v sufficient_o evident_a and_o 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o mean_a idiot_n his_o plant_n and_o propagate_a christianity_n in_o the_o world_n for_o it_o be_v not_o say_v he_o in_o the_o power_n of_o a_o mere_a man_n in_o so_o short_a a_o time_n to_o encircle_v the_o world_n to_o compass_v sea_n and_o land_n and_o in_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a importance_n to_o rescue_v mankind_n from_o the_o slavery_n of_o absurd_a and_o unreasonable_a custom_n and_o the_o powerful_a tyranny_n of_o evil_a habit_n and_o these_o not_o roman_n only_o but_o persian_n and_o the_o most_o barbarous_a nation_n of_o the_o world_n a_o reformation_n which_o he_o wrought_v not_o by_o force_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o sword_n nor_o by_o pour_v into_o the_o world_n numerous_a legion_n and_o army_n but_o by_o a_o few_o inconsiderable_a man_n no_o more_o at_o first_o then_o eleven_o a_o company_n of_o obscure_a and_o mean_a simple_a and_o illiterate_a poor_a and_o helpless_a naked_a and_o unarmed_a person_n who_o have_v scarce_o a_o shoe_n to_o tread_v on_o or_o a_o coat_n to_o cover_v they_o and_o yet_o by_o these_o he_o persuade_v so_o great_a a_o part_n of_o mankind_n to_o be_v able_a free_o to_o reason_n not_o only_o of_o thing_n of_o the_o present_a but_o of_o a_o future_a state_n to_o renounce_v the_o law_n of_o their_o country_n and_o throw_v off_o those_o ancient_a and_o inveterate_a custom_n which_o have_v take_v root_n for_o so_o many_o age_n and_o plant_v other_o in_o their_o room_n and_o reduce_v man_n from_o those_o easy_a way_n whereinto_o they_o be_v hurry_v into_o the_o more_o rugged_a and_o difficult_a path_n of_o virtue_n all_o which_o he_o do_v while_o he_o have_v to_o contend_v with_o opposite_a power_n and_o when_o he_o himself_o have_v undergo_v the_o most_o ignominious_a death_n even_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross._n afterward_o he_o address_v himself_o to_o the_o jew_n and_o discourse_n with_o he_o much_o after_o the_o same_o rate_n consider_v say_v 746._o he_o and_o bethink_v thyself_o what_o it_o be_v in_o so_o short_a a_o time_n to_o fill_v the_o whole_a world_n with_o so_o many_o famous_a church_n to_o convert_v so_o many_o nation_n to_o the_o faith_n to_o prevail_v with_o man_n to_o forsake_v the_o religion_n of_o their_o country_n to_o root_v up_o their_o rite_n and_o custom_n to_o shake_v off_o the_o empire_n of_o lust_n and_o pleasure_n and_o the_o law_n of_o vice_n like_o dust_n to_o abolish_v and_o abominate_a their_o temple_n and_o their_o altar_n their_o idol_n and_o their_o sacrifice_n their_o profane_a and_o impious_a festival_n as_o dirt_n and_o dung_n and_o instead_o hereof_o to_o set_v up_o christian_a altar_n in_o all_o place_n among_o the_o roman_n persian_n scythian_n moor_n and_o indian_n and_o not_o there_o only_o but_o in_o the_o country_n beyond_o this_o world_n of_o we_o for_o even_o the_o british_a island_n that_o lie_v beyond_o the_o ocean_n and_o those_o that_o be_v in_o 〈◊〉_d have_v feel_v the_o power_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n church_n and_o altar_n be_v erect_v there_o to_o the_o service_n of_o christ._n a_o matter_n true_o great_a and_o admirable_a and_o which_o will_v clear_o have_v demonstrate_v a_o divine_a and_o supereminent_a power_n although_o there_o have_v be_v no_o opposition_n in_o the_o case_n but_o that_o all_o thing_n have_v run_v on_o calm_o and_o smooth_o to_o think_v that_o in_o so_o few_o year_n the_o christian_a faith_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o reclaim_v the_o whole_a world_n from_o its_o vicious_a custom_n and_o to_o win_v they_o over_o to_o other_o manner_n more_o laborious_a and_o difficult_a repugnant_a both_o to_o their_o native_a inclination_n and_o to_o the_o law_n and_o principle_n of_o their_o education_n and_o such_o as_o oblige_v they_o to_o a_o more_o strict_a and_o accurate_a course_n of_o life_n and_o these_o person_n not_o one_o or_o two_o not_o twenty_o or_o a_o hundred_o but_o in_o a_o manner_n all_o mankind_n and_o this_o bring_v about_o by_o no_o better_a instrument_n than_o a_o few_o rude_a and_o unlearned_a private_a and_o unknown_a tradesman_n who_o have_v neither_o estate_n nor_o reputation_n learning_n nor_o eloquence_n kindred_n nor_o country_n to_o recommend_v they_o to_o the_o world_n a_o few_o fisherman_n and_o tent-maker_n and_o who_o distinguish_v by_o their_o language_n as_o well_o as_o their_o religion_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n scorn_v as_o barbarous_a and_o yet_o these_o be_v the_o man_n by_o who_o our_o lord_n build_v up_o his_o church_n and_o extend_v it_o from_o one_o end_n of_o the_o world_n unto_o the_o other_o other_o consideration_n there_o be_v with_o which_o the_o father_n do_v urge_v and_o illustrate_v this_o argument_n which_o i_o forbear_v to_o insist_v on_o in_o this_o place_n vii_o six_o the_o power_n and_o authority_n convey_v by_o this_o commission_n to_o the_o apostle_n be_v equal_o confer_v upon_o all_o of_o they_o they_o be_v all_o choose_v at_o the_o same_o time_n all_o equal_o empower_v to_o preach_v and_o baptise_v all_o equal_o entrust_v with_o the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v all_o invest_v with_o the_o same_o mission_n and_o all_o equal_o furnish_v with_o the_o same_o gift_n and_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n indeed_o the_o advocate_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v with_o a_o mighty_a zeal_n and_o fierceness_n contend_v for_o s._n peter_n be_v head_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n advance_v by_o christ_n to_o a_o supremacy_n and_o prerogative_n not_o only_o above_o but_o over_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o not_o without_o reason_n the_o fortune_n of_o that_o church_n be_v concern_v in_o the_o supremacy_n of_o s._n peter_n no_o wonder_n therefore_o they_o ransack_v all_o corner_n press_v and_o force_v in_o whatever_o may_v but_o seem_v to_o give_v countenance_n to_o it_o witness_v those_o thin_a and_o miserable_a shift_n which_o bellarmine_n call_v argument_n to_o prove_v and_o make_v it_o good_a so_o utter_o devoid_a of_o all_o rational_a conviction_n so_o unable_a to_o justify_v themselves_o to_o sober_a and_o consider_a man_n that_o a_o man_n will_v think_v they_o have_v be_v contrive_v for_o no_o other_o purpose_n than_o to_o cheat_v sool_n and_o make_v wise_a man_n laugh_v and_o the_o truth_n be_v nothing_o with_o i_o more_o shake_v the_o reputation_n of_o the_o wisdom_n of_o that_o learned_a man_n than_o his_o make_n use_v of_o such_o weak_a and_o trifle_a argument_n in_o so_o important_a and_o concern_v a_o article_n so_o vital_a and_o essential_a to_o the_o constitution_n of_o that_o church_n as_o when_o he_o argue_v peter_n siq_n superiority_n from_o the_o mere_a change_n of_o his_o name_n for_o what_o be_v this_o to_o supremacy_n beside_o that_o it_o be_v not_o do_v to_o he_o alone_o the_o same_o be_v do_v to_o james_n and_o john_n from_o his_o be_v first_o reckon_v up_o in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o apostle_n his_o walk_n with_o christ_n upon_o the_o water_n his_o pay_a tribute_n for_o his_o master_n and_o himself_o his_o be_v command_v to_o let_v down_o the_o net_n and_o christ_n teach_v in_o peter_n ship_n and_o this_o ship_n must_v denote_v the_o church_n and_o peter_n be_v owner_n of_o it_o entitle_v he_o to_o be_v supreme_a ruler_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n so_o bellarmine_n in_o term_n as_o plain_a as_o he_o can_v well_o express_v it_o from_o christ_n first_o wash_v peter_n foot_n though_o the_o story_n record_v by_o the_o evangelist_n say_v no_o such_o thing_n and_o his_o foretell_v only_o his_o death_n all_o which_o and_o many_o more_o prerogative_n of_o s._n peter_n to_o the_o number_n of_o no_o less_o than_o xxviii_o be_v summon_v in_o to_o give_v in_o evidence_n in_o this_o cause_n and_o many_o of_o these_o too_o draw_v out_o of_o apocryphal_a and_o supposititious_a author_n and_o not_o only_o uncertain_a but_o absurd_a and_o fabulous_a and_o yet_o upon_o such_o argument_n as_o these_o do_v they_o find_v his_o paramount_n authority_n a_o plain_a evidence_n of_o a_o desperate_a and_o sink_a cause_n when_o such_o twig_n must_v be_v lay_v hold_v on_o to_o support_v and_o keep_v it_o above_o water_n have_v they_o suffer_v peter_n to_o be_v content_a with_o a_o primacy_n of_o order_n which_o his_o age_n and_o gravity_n seem_v to_o challenge_v for_o he_o no_o wise_n and_o peaceable_a man_n will_v have_v deny_v it_o as_o be_v a_o thing_n ordinary_o practise_v among_o equal_n and_o necessary_a to_o the_o well_o govern_v a_o society_n but_o when_o nothing_o but_o a_o primacy_n of_o power_n will_v serve_v the_o turn_n as_o if_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v be_v inferior_a to_o he_o this_o may_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v grant_v as_o be_v express_o contrary_a to_o the_o positive_a
pray_v for_o they_o that_o they_o may_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n they_o lay_v their_o hand_n upon_o they_o and_o they_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o when_o the_o magician_n behold_v he_o offer_v the_o apostle_n money_n to_o enable_v he_o that_o on_o who_o soever_o he_o lay_v his_o hand_n he_o may_v derive_v these_o miraculous_a power_n upon_o they_o fourteen_o have_v see_v how_o sit_o furnish_v the_o apostle_n be_v for_o the_o execution_n of_o their_o office_n let_v we_o in_o the_o last_o place_n inquire_v into_o its_o duration_n and_o continuance_n and_o here_o it_o must_v be_v consider_v that_o in_o the_o apostolical_a office_n there_o be_v something_o extraordinary_a and_o something_o ordinary_a what_o be_v 〈◊〉_d be_v their_o immediate_a commission_n derive_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o christ_n himself_o their_o unlimited_a charge_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n up_o and_o down_o the_o world_n without_o be_v tie_v to_o any_o particular_a place_n the_o supernatural_a and_o miraculous_a power_n confer_v upon_o they_o as_o apostle_n their_o infallible_a guidance_n in_o deliver_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o these_o all_o expire_v and_o determine_v with_o their_o person_n the_o stand_a and_o perpetual_a part_n of_o it_o be_v to_o teach_v and_o instruct_v the_o people_n in_o the_o duty_n and_o principle_n of_o religion_n to_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n to_o constitute_v guide_n and_o 〈◊〉_d and_o to_o exercise_v the_o discipline_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o these_o they_o be_v succeed_v by_o the_o ordinary_a ruler_n and_o ecclesiastic_a guide_n who_o be_v to_o superintend_v and_o discharge_v the_o affair_n and_o office_n of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n whence_o it_o be_v that_o bishop_n and_o governor_n come_v to_o be_v style_v apostle_n as_o be_v their_o successor_n in_o ordinary_a for_o so_o they_o frequent_o be_v in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o church_n thus_o timothy_n who_o be_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n be_v call_v a_o 24._o apostle_n clemens_n of_o rome_n clemens_n the_o 516._o apostle_n s._n mark_v bishop_n of_o alexandria_n by_o 66._o 〈◊〉_d style_v both_o a_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n ignatius_n a_o bishop_n and_o 〈◊〉_d apostle_n a_o title_n that_o continue_v in_o after_o age_n especial_o give_v to_o those_o that_o be_v the_o first_o planter_n or_o restorer_n of_o christianity_n in_o any_o country_n in_o the_o coptick_n calendar_n publish_v by_o 398._o mr._n selden_n the_o vii_o the_o day_n of_o the_o month_n baschnes_n answer_v to_o our_o second_o of_o may_n be_v dedicate_v to_o the_o memory_n of_o s._n athanasius_n the_o apostle_n acacius_n and_o paulus_n in_o their_o 1._o letter_n to_o epiphanius_n style_v he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o new_a apostle_n and_o preacher_n and_o 150._o sidonius_n apollinaris_n write_v to_o lupus_n bishop_n of_o troy_n in_o france_n speak_v of_o the_o honour_n due_a to_o his_o eminent_a apostleship_n a_o observation_n which_o it_o be_v easy_a enough_o to_o confirm_v by_o abundant_a instance_n be_v it_o either_o doubtful_a in_o itself_o or_o necessary_a to_o my_o purpose_n but_o be_v neither_o i_o forbear_v joan._n euchait_fw-fr metropolitae_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 70._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o life_n of_o s._n peter_n s._n peter_n he_o be_v crucify_v at_o rome_n with_o his_o head_n downward_o and_o bury_v in_o the_o vatican_n there_o s._n hierom._n after_o he_o have_v plant_v a_o christian_a church_n first_o at_o antioch_n and_o afterward_o at_o rome_n s._n peter_n martyrdom_n joh._n 21._o 18._o 19_o very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o when_o thou_o be_v young_a thou_o gird_v thyself_o &_o walkedst_a whither_o thou_o will_v but_o when_o thou_o shall_v be_v old_a thou_o shall_v stretch_v forth_o thy_o hand_n &_o another_o shall_v gird_v thou_o &_o carry_v thou_o whither_o thou_o will_v not_o this_o speak_v he_o signify_v by_o what_o death_n he_o shall_v glorify_v god_n sect_n i._o of_o s._n peter_n from_o his_o birth_n till_o his_o first_o come_v to_o christ._n bethsaida_n s._n peter_n birth-place_n its_o dignity_n of_o old_a and_o fate_n at_o this_o day_n the_o time_n of_o his_o birth_n inquire_v into_o some_o error_n note_v concern_v it_o his_o name_n cephas_n the_o impose_v of_o it_o note_v no_o superiority_n over_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o custom_n of_o pope_n assume_v a_o new_a name_n at_o their_o election_n to_o the_o papacy_n whence_o his_o kindred_n and_o relation_n whether_o he_o or_o andrew_n the_o elder_a brother_n his_o trade_n and_o way_n of_o life_n what_o before_o his_o come_n to_o christ._n the_o sea_n of_o galilee_n and_o the_o conveniency_n of_o it_o the_o meanness_n and_o obscurity_n of_o his_o trade_n the_o remarkable_a appearance_n of_o the_o divine_a providence_n in_o propagate_a christianity_n in_o the_o world_n by_o mean_a and_o unlikely_a instrument_n the_o land_n of_o palestine_n be_v at_o and_o before_o the_o come_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n distinguish_v into_o three_o several_a province_n judaea_n samaria_n and_o galilee_n this_o last_o be_v divide_v into_o the_o upper_a and_o the_o low_a in_o the_o upper_a call_v also_o galilee_n of_o the_o gentile_n within_o the_o division_n ancient_o belong_v to_o the_o tribe_n of_o nephthali_n stand_v bethsaida_n former_o a_o obscure_a and_o inconsiderable_a village_n till_o late_o re-edify_v and_o enlarge_v by_o 618._o philip_n the_o tetrarch_n by_o he_o advance_v to_o the_o place_n and_o title_n of_o a_o city_n replenish_v with_o inhabitant_n and_o fortify_v with_o power_n and_o strength_n and_o in_o honour_n of_o julia_n the_o daughter_n of_o augustus_n caesar_n by_o he_o style_v julias_n situate_v it_o be_v upon_o the_o bank_n of_o the_o sea_n of_o galilee_n and_o have_v a_o wilderness_n on_o the_o other_o side_n thence_o call_v the_o desert_n of_o bethsaida_n whither_o our_o saviour_n use_v often_o to_o retire_v the_o privacy_n and_o solitude_n of_o the_o place_n advantageous_o minister_a to_o divine_a contemplation_n but_o bethsaida_n be_v not_o so_o remarkable_a for_o this_o adjoin_a wilderness_n as_o itself_o be_v memorable_a for_o a_o worse_a sort_n of_o barrenness_n ingratitude_n and_o unprofitableness_n under_o the_o influence_n of_o christ_n sermon_n and_o miracle_n thence_o severe_o upbraid_v by_o he_o and_o threaten_v with_o one_o of_o his_o deep_a woe_n woe_n unto_o thou_o chorazin_n woe_n unto_o 21._o thou_o bethsaida_n etc._n etc._n a_o woe_n that_o it_o seem_v stick_v close_o to_o it_o for_o whatever_o it_o be_v at_o this_o time_n 358_o one_o who_o survey_v it_o in_o the_o last_o age_n tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v shrink_v again_o into_o a_o very_a mean_a and_o small_a village_n consist_v only_o of_o a_o few_o cottage_n of_o moor_n and_o wild_a arab_n and_o late_a traveller_n have_v since_o assure_v we_o that_o even_o these_o be_v dwindle_v away_o into_o one_o poor_a cottage_n at_o this_o day_n so_o fatal_o do_v sin_n undermine_v the_o great_a the_o goodly_a place_n so_o certain_o do_v god_n word_n take_v place_n and_o not_o one_o lot_n a_o either_o of_o his_o promise_n or_o threaten_n fall_v to_o the_o ground_n next_o to_o the_o honour_n that_o be_v do_v it_o by_o our_o saviour_n presence_n who_o live_v most_o in_o these_o part_n frequent_o resort_v hither_o it_o have_v nothing_o great_a to_o recommend_v it_o to_o the_o notice_n of_o posterity_n than_o that_o beside_o some_o other_o of_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v the_o birth-place_n of_o s._n peter_n a_o person_n how_o inconsiderable_a soever_o in_o his_o private_a fortune_n yet_o of_o great_a note_n and_o eminency_n as_o one_o of_o the_o prime_a ambassador_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o who_o both_o sacred_a and_o ecclesiastical_a story_n give_v though_o not_o a_o superiority_n a_o precedency_n in_o the_o college_n of_o apostle_n 2._o the_o particular_a time_n of_o his_o birth_n can_v be_v recover_v no_o probable_a footstep_n or_o intimation_n be_v leave_v of_o it_o in_o the_o general_n we_o may_v conclude_v he_o at_o least_o ten_o year_n elder_a than_o his_o master_n his_o marry_a condition_n and_o settle_a course_n of_o life_n at_o his_o first_o come_v to_o christ_n and_o that_o authority_n and_o respect_n which_o the_o gravity_n of_o his_o person_n procure_v he_o among_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n can_v speak_v he_o no_o less_o but_o for_o any_o thing_n more_o particular_a and_o positive_a in_o this_o matter_n i_o see_v no_o reason_n to_o affirm_v indeed_o may_v we_o trust_v the_o account_n
be_v give_v he_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n by_o virtue_n whereof_o they_o shall_v go_v teach_v and_o baptize_v all_o nation_n and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o every_o creature_n that_o they_o shall_v feed_v god_n flock_n rule_v well_o inspect_n and_o watch_v ever_o those_o over_o who_o they_o have_v the_o authority_n and_o the_o rule_n word_n of_o as_o large_a and_o more_o express_a signification_n than_o those_o which_o be_v here_o speak_v to_o s._n peter_n 5._o our_o lord_n have_v thus_o engage_v peter_n to_o a_o cheerful_a compliance_n with_o the_o danger_n that_o may_v attend_v the_o discharge_n and_o execution_n of_o his_o office_n now_o particular_o intimate_v to_o he_o what_o that_o fate_n be_v that_o shall_v attend_v he_o tell_v he_o that_o though_o when_o he_o be_v young_a he_o gird_v himself_o live_v at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n and_o go_v whither_o he_o please_v yet_o when_o he_o be_v old_a he_o shall_v stretch_v forth_o his_o hand_n and_o another_o shall_v gird_v and_o bind_v he_o and_o lead_v he_o whither_o he_o have_v no_o mind_n to_o go_v intimate_v as_o the_o evangelist_n tell_v we_o by_o what_o death_n he_o shall_v glorify_v god_n that_o be_v by_o crucifixion_n the_o martyrdom_n which_o he_o afterward_o undergo_v and_o then_o rise_v up_o command_v he_o to_o follow_v he_o by_o this_o bodily_a attendance_n mystical_o imply_v his_o conformity_n to_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o shall_v follow_v he_o in_o die_v for_o the_o truth_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v not_o 8._o long_o after_o that_o our_o lord_n appear_v to_o they_o to_o take_v his_o last_o farewell_n of_o they_o when_o 49._o lead_v they_o out_o unto_o bethany_n a_o little_a village_n upon_o the_o mount_n of_o olive_n he_o brief_o tell_v they_o that_o they_o be_v the_o person_n who_o he_o have_v choose_v to_o be_v the_o witness_n both_o of_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n a_o testimony_n which_o they_o shall_v bear_v to_o he_o in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n in_o order_n to_o which_o he_o will_v after_o his_o ascension_n pour_v out_o his_o spirit_n upon_o they_o in_o large_a measure_n than_o they_o have_v hitherto_o receive_v that_o they_o may_v be_v the_o better_o fortify_v to_o grapple_v with_o that_o violent_a rage_n and_o sury_n wherewith_o both_o man_n and_o devil_n will_v endeavour_v to_o oppose_v they_o and_o that_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o shall_v return_v to_o jerusalem_n and_o stay_v till_o these_o miraculous_a power_n be_v from_o on_o high_a confer_v upon_o they_o his_o discourse_n be_v end_v lay_v his_o hand_n upon_o they_o he_o give_v they_o his_o solemn_a blessing_n which_o do_v he_o be_v immediate_o take_v from_o they_o and_o be_v attend_v with_o a_o glorious_a guard_n and_o train_n of_o angel_n be_v receive_v up_o into_o heaven_n 3._o antiquity_n tell_v we_o that_o in_o the_o place_n where_o he_o last_o tread_v upon_o the_o rock_n the_o impression_n of_o his_o foot_n do_v remain_v which_o can_v never_o afterward_o be_v fill_v up_o or_o impair_v over_o which_o helena_n mother_n of_o the_o great_a constantine_n afterward_o build_v a_o little_a chapel_n call_v the_o chapel_n of_o the_o ascension_n in_o the_o floor_n whereof_o upon_o a_o whitish_a kind_n of_o stone_n modern_a 156._o traveller_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o impression_n of_o his_o foot_n be_v show_v at_o this_o day_n but_o it_o be_v that_o of_o his_o right_a foot_n only_o the_o other_o be_v take_v away_o by_o the_o turk_n and_o as_o it_o be_v say_v keep_v in_o the_o temple_n at_o jerusalem_n our_o lord_n be_v thus_o take_v from_o they_o the_o apostle_n be_v fill_v with_o a_o great_a sense_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o majesty_n than_o while_o he_o be_v wont_n familiar_o to_o converse_v with_o they_o and_o have_v perform_v their_o solemn_a adoration_n to_o he_o return_v back_o to_o jerusalem_n wait_v for_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v short_o after_o 52._o confer_v upon_o they_o they_o worship_v he_o and_o return_v to_o jerusalem_n with_o great_a joy_n they_o who_o late_o be_v overwhelm_v with_o sorrow_n at_o the_o very_a mention_n of_o their_o lord_n departure_n from_o they_o entertain_v it_o now_o with_o joy_n and_o triumph_n be_v full_o satisfy_v of_o his_o glorious_a advancement_n at_o god_n right_a hand_n and_o of_o that_o particular_a care_n and_o providence_n which_o they_o be_v sure_o he_o will_v exercise_v towards_o they_o in_o pursuance_n of_o those_o great_a trust_v he_o have_v commit_v to_o they_o sect_n vii_o s._n peter_n act_n from_o our_o lord_n ascension_n till_o the_o dispersion_n of_o the_o church_n the_o apostle_n return_v to_o jerusalem_n the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o upper-room_n where_o they_o assemble_v what_o peter_n declare_v the_o necessity_n of_o a_o new_a apostle_n be_v choose_v in_o the_o room_n of_o judas_n the_o promise_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n make_v good_a upon_o the_o day_n of_o pentecost_n the_o spirit_n descend_v in_o the_o likeness_n of_o fiery_a cleave_a tongue_n and_o why_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o miracle_n peter_n vindication_n of_o the_o apostle_n from_o the_o stander_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o prove_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o promise_a messiah_n great_a number_n convert_v by_o his_o sermon_n his_o go_v up_o to_o the_o temple_n what_o their_o state_v hour_n of_o prayer_n his_o cure_v the_o impotent_a cripple_n there_o and_o discourse_n to_o the_o jew_n upon_o it_o what_o number_n convert_v by_o he_o peter_n and_o john_n seize_v and_o cast_v into_o prison_n bring_v before_o the_o sanhedrim_n and_o their_o resolute_a carriage_n there_o their_o refuse_v to_o obey_v when_o command_v not_o to_o preach_v christ._n the_o great_a security_n the_o christian_a religion_n provide_v sore_a subjection_n to_o magistrate_n in_o all_o lawful_a instance_n of_o obedience_n the_o great_a severity_n use_v by_o peter_n towards_o ananias_n and_o saphira_n the_o great_a miracle_n wrought_v by_o he_o again_o cast_v into_o prison_n and_o deliver_v by_o a_o angel_n their_o appear_v before_o the_o sanhedrim_n and_o deliverance_n by_o the_o prudent_a counsel_n of_o gamaliel_n 1._o the_o holy_a jesus_n be_v go_v to_o heaven_n the_o apostle_n begin_v to_o act_v according_a to_o the_o power_n and_o commission_n he_o have_v leave_v with_o they_o in_o order_n whereunto_o the_o first_o thing_n they_o do_v after_o his_o ascension_n be_v to_o fill_v up_o the_o vacancy_n in_o their_o college_n late_o make_v by_o the_o unhappy_a fall_n and_o apostasy_n of_o judas_n to_o which_o end_n no_o soon_o be_v they_o return_v to_o jerusalem_n but_o they_o go_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d into_o a_o upper-room_n where_o this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v whether_o in_o the_o house_n of_o s._n john_n or_o of_o marry_o john-mark's_a mother_n or_o in_o some_o of_o the_o out-room_n belong_v to_o the_o temple_n for_o the_o temple_n have_v over_o the_o cloister_n several_a chamber_n for_o the_o service_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n and_o as_o repository_n where_o the_o consecrate_a vessel_n and_o utensil_n of_o the_o temple_n be_v lay_v up_o though_o it_o be_v not_o probable_a that_o the_o jew_n and_o especial_o the_o priest_n will_v suffer_v the_o apostle_n and_o their_o company_n to_o be_v so_o near_o the_o temple_n i_o stand_v not_o to_o inquire_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o jew_n usual_o have_v their_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d private_a oratory_n in_o the_o upper_a part_n of_o their_o house_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o the_o more_o private_a exercise_n of_o their_o devotion_n thus_o daniel_n have_v his_o 10._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d his_o upper-chamber_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o lxx_o render_v it_o whither_o he_o be_v wont_a to_o retire_v to_o pray_v to_o his_o god_n and_o 76._o benjamin_n the_o jew_n tell_v we_o that_o in_o his_o time_n ann._n chr._n 1172._o the_o jew_n at_o babylon_n be_v wont_a to_o pray_v both_o in_o their_o synagogue_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o in_o that_o ancient_a upper-room_n of_o daniel_n which_o the_o prophet_n himself_o build_v such_o a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o upper-chamber_n be_v that_o wherein_o s._n paul_n preach_v at_o troas_n and_o 8._o such_o probable_o this_o where_o the_o apostle_n be_v now_o meet_v together_o and_o in_o all_o likelihood_n the_o same_o where_o our_o lord_n have_v late_o keep_v the_o passeover_n where_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o church_n be_v assemble_v on_o the_o day_n of_o pentecost_n and_o which_o be_v then_o the_o usual_a place_n of_o their_o religious_a assembly_n as_o we_o have_v elsewhere_o observe_v more_o at_o 126._o large_a here_o the_o church_n be_v meet_v to_o the_o number_n of_o about_o cxx_o peter_n as_o precedent_n of_o the_o assembly_n put_v they_o in_o mind_n that_o judas_n one_o of_o
general_a correspondence_n with_o it_o &_o live_v under_o the_o obligation_n of_o the_o seven_o precept_n of_o the_o son_n of_o noah_n have_v by_o a_o immediate_a command_n from_o god_n send_v for_o he_o the_o next_o day_n peter_n accompany_v with_o some_o of_o the_o brethren_n go_v along_o with_o they_o and_o the_o day_n after_o they_o come_v to_o caesarea_n against_o who_o arrival_n cornelius_n have_v summon_v his_o friend_n and_o kindred_n to_o his_o house_n peter_n arrive_v cornelius_n who_o be_v affect_v with_o a_o mighty_a reverence_n for_o so_o great_a a_o person_n fall_v at_o his_o foot_n and_o worship_v he_o a_o way_n of_o address_n frequent_a in_o those_o eastern_a country_n towards_o prince_n and_o great_a man_n but_o by_o the_o greek_n and_o roman_n appropriate_v as_o a_o peculiar_a honour_n to_o the_o go_n peter_n reject_v the_o honour_n as_o due_a only_o to_o god_n enter_v into_o the_o house_n where_o he_o first_o make_v his_o apology_n to_o the_o company_n that_o though_o they_o can_v not_o but_o know_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o a_o jew_n to_o 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o duty_n of_o religion_n with_o those_o of_o another_o nation_n yet_o that_o now_o god_n have_v teach_v he_o another_o lesson_n and_o then_o proceed_v particular_o to_o inquire_v the_o reason_n of_o cornelius_n his_o send_v for_o he_o whereupon_o cornelius_n tell_v he_o that_o four_o day_n since_o be_v conversant_a in_o the_o duty_n of_o fast_v and_o prayer_n a_o angel_n have_v appear_v to_o he_o and_o tell_v he_o that_o his_o prayer_n and_o alm_n be_v come_v up_o for_o a_o memorial_n before_o god_n that_o he_o shall_v send_v to_o joppa_n for_o one_o simon_n peter_n who_o lodge_v in_o a_o tanner_n house_n by_o the_o sea_n side_n who_o shall_v further_o make_v know_v his_o mind_n to_o he_o that_z according_o he_o have_v send_v and_o be_v now_o come_v they_o be_v there_o meet_v to_o hear_v what_o he_o have_v to_o say_v to_o they_o where_o we_o see_v that_o though_o god_n send_v a_o angel_n to_o cornelius_n to_o acquaint_v he_o with_o his_o will_n yet_o the_o angel_n be_v only_o to_o direct_v he_o to_o the_o apostle_n for_o instruction_n in_o the_o faith_n which_o no_o doubt_n be_v do_v partly_o that_o god_n may_v put_v the_o great_a honour_n upon_o a_o institution_n that_o be_v likely_a to_o meet_v with_o contempt_n and_o scorn_n enough_o from_o the_o world_n partly_o to_o let_v we_o see_v that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o expect_v extraordinary_a and_o miraculous_a way_n of_o teach_v and_o information_n where_o god_n afford_v ordinary_a mean_n 4._o hereupon_o peter_n begin_v this_o discourse_n that_o by_o compare_v thing_n it_o be_v now_o plain_a and_o evident_a that_o the_o partition-wall_n be_v break_v down_o that_o god_n have_v no_o long_o a_o particular_a kindness_n for_o nation_n or_o person_n that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o nation_n but_o the_o religion_n not_o the_o outward_a quality_n of_o the_o man_n but_o the_o inward_a temper_n of_o the_o mind_n that_o recommend_v man_n to_o god_n that_o the_o devout_a and_o the_o pious_a the_o righteous_a and_o the_o 1._o good_a man_n wherever_o he_o be_v be_v equal_o dear_a to_o heaven_n that_o god_n have_v as_o much_o respect_n for_o a_o just_a and_o a_o virtuous_a person_n in_o the_o wild_n of_o scythia_n as_o upon_o mount_n zion_n that_o the_o reconcile_n and_o make_v peace_n between_o god_n and_o man_n by_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o doctrine_n publish_v by_o the_o prophet_n of_o old_a and_o of_o late_a since_o the_o time_n of_o john_n preach_v through_o galilee_n and_o judaea_n viz._n that_o god_n have_v anoint_v and_o consecrate_a jesus_n of_o nazareth_n with_o divine_a power_n and_o grace_n in_o the_o exercise_n whereof_o he_o constant_o go_v about_o to_o do_v good_a to_o man_n that_o they_o have_v see_v all_o he_o have_v do_v among_o the_o jew_n who_o though_o they_o have_v slay_v and_o crucify_v yet_o that_o god_n have_v raise_v he_o again_o the_o three_o day_n and_o have_v open_o show_v he_o to_o his_o apostle_n and_o follower_n who_o he_o have_v choose_v to_o be_v his_o peculiar_a witness_n and_o who_o to_o that_o end_n he_o have_v admit_v to_o eat_v and_o drink_v with_o he_o after_o his_o resurrection_n command_v they_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o mankind_n and_o to_o 〈◊〉_d that_o he_o be_v the_o person_n who_o god_n have_v ordain_v to_o be_v the_o great_a judge_n of_o the_o world_n that_o all_o the_o prophet_n with_o one_o consent_n bear_v witness_v of_o he_o that_o this_o jesus_n be_v he_o in_o who_o name_n whosoever_o believe_v shall_v certain_o receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n while_o peter_n be_v thus_o preach_v to_o they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n fall_v upon_o a_o great_a part_n of_o his_o auditory_a enable_v they_o to_o speak_v several_a language_n and_o therein_o to_o magnify_v the_o giver_n of_o they_o whereat_o the_o 〈◊〉_d who_o come_v along_o with_o peter_n do_v sufficient_o wonder_v to_o see_v that_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v be_v pour_v upon_o the_o gentile_n peter_n see_v this_o tell_v the_o company_n that_o he_o know_v no_o reason_n why_o these_o person_n shall_v not_o be_v baptize_v have_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o well_o as_o they_o and_o according_o command_v they_o to_o be_v baptize_v for_o who_o further_a confirmation_n he_o stay_v some_o time_n long_o with_o they_o this_o act_n of_o peter_n make_v a_o great_a noise_n among_o the_o apostle_n and_o brethren_n at_o jerusalem_n who_o be_v late_o convert_v from_o their_o judaisme_n be_v as_o yet_o zealous_a for_o the_o religion_n of_o 1._o their_o country_n and_o therefore_o severe_o charge_v peter_n at_o his_o return_n for_o his_o too_o familiar_a converse_v with_o the_o gentile_n see_v here_o the_o powerful_a prejudice_n of_o education_n the_o jew_n have_v for_o several_a age_n conceive_v a_o radicate_v and_o inveterate_a prejudice_n against_o the_o gentile_n indeed_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n command_v they_o to_o be_v peculiar_o kind_a to_o their_o own_o nation_n and_o the_o rite_n and_o institution_n of_o their_o religion_n and_o the_o peculiar_a form_n of_o their_o commonwealth_n make_v they_o different_a from_o the_o fashion_n of_o other_o country_n a_o separation_n which_o in_o aftertime_n they_o draw_v into_o a_o narrow_a compass_n beside_o they_o be_v mighty_o 〈◊〉_d up_o with_o their_o external_a privilege_n that_o they_o be_v the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n the_o people_n who_o god_n have_v peculiar_o choose_v for_o himself_o above_o all_o other_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o with_o a_o lofty_a scorn_n proud_o reject_v the_o gentile_n as_o dog_n and_o reprobate_n utter_o refuse_v to_o show_v they_o any_o office_n of_o common_a kindness_n and_o converse_n we_o find_v the_o heathen_n frequent_o charge_v they_o with_o this_o rudeness_n and_o inhumanity_n 439._o juvenal_n accuse_v they_o that_o they_o will_v not_o show_v a_o traveller_n the_o right_a way_n nor_o give_v give_v he_o a_o draught_n of_o water_n if_o he_o be_v not_o of_o their_o religion_n 535._o tacitus_n tell_v we_o that_o they_o have_v adversus_fw-la omnes_fw-la alios_fw-la hostile_a odium_fw-la a_o bitter_a hatred_n of_o all_o other_o people_n 6._o haman_n represent_v they_o to_o ahasuerus_n as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n a_o people_n that_o will_v never_o kind_o mix_v and_o correspond_v with_o any_o other_o as_o different_z in_o their_o manner_n as_o in_o their_o law_n and_o religion_n from_o other_o nation_n the_o friend_n of_o antiochus_n as_o the_o 1149._o historian_n report_v charge_v they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o they_o alone_o of_o all_o other_o be_v the_o most_o unsociable_a people_n under_o heaven_n that_o they_o hold_v no_o converse_n or_o correspondence_n with_o any_o other_o but_o account_v they_o as_o their_o mortal_a enemy_n that_o they_o will_v not_o eat_v or_o drink_v with_o man_n of_o another_o nation_n no_o nor_o so_o much_o as_o wish_v well_o to_o they_o their_o ancestor_n have_v leaven_v they_o with_o a_o hatred_n of_o all_o mankind_n this_o be_v their_o humour_n and_o that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d herein_o do_v not_o wrong_v they_o be_v sufficient_o evident_a from_o their_o ordinary_a practice_n and_o be_v open_o avow_v by_o their_o own_o 11._o write_n nay_o at_o their_o first_o come_v over_o to_o christianity_n though_o one_o great_a design_n of_o it_o be_v to_o soften_v the_o manner_n of_o man_n and_o to_o oblige_v they_o to_o a_o more_o extensive_a and_o universal_a charity_n yet_o can_v they_o hardly_o quit_v this_o common_a prejudice_n quarrel_v with_o peter_n for_o no_o other_o reason_n but_o that_o he_o have_v eat_v and_o drunken_a with_o the_o gentile_n insomuch_o that_o he_o be_v force_v to_o apologise_v for_o himself_o and_o to_o justify_v his_o action_n as_o immediate_o do_v by_o divine_a warrant_n and_o authority_n and_o
falsehood_n and_o the_o other_o with_o rudeness_n and_o incivility_n and_o that_o the_o whole_a be_v but_o a_o compact_n of_o forgery_n and_o deceit_n while_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o church_n do_v thus_o fall_v out_o among_o themselves_o and_o so_o sensible_a be_v some_o of_o this_o in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o christianity_n that_o rather_o than_o such_o a_o dishonour_n and_o disgrace_n as_o they_o account_v it_o shall_v be_v reflect_v upon_o peter_n they_o tell_v 168_o we_o of_o two_o several_a cephas_n one_o the_o apostle_n the_o other_o one_o of_o the_o seventy_o disciple_n and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o last_o of_o those_o that_o be_v guilty_a of_o this_o prevarication_n and_o who_o s._n paul_n so_o vigorous_o resist_v and_o reprove_v at_o antioch_n but_o for_o this_o plausible_a and_o well-meant_a evasion_n the_o champion_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n con_v they_o no_o great_a thanks_o at_o this_o day_n nay_o s._n hierom_n long_o since_o full_o confute_v it_o in_o his_o note_n upon_o this_o place_n sect_n ix_o of_o s._n peter_n act_n from_o the_o end_n of_o the_o sacred_a story_n till_o his_o martyrdom_n peter_n story_n prosecute_v out_o of_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n his_o plant_n of_o a_o church_n and_o a_o episcopal_a sea_n at_o antioch_n when_o say_v to_o be_v his_o first_o journey_n to_o rome_n and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d it_o bring_v to_o the_o roman_a empire_n his_o preach_v in_o other_o place_n and_o return_v to_o rome_n his_o encounter_n with_o simon_n magus_n the_o imposture_n of_o the_o magician_n his_o familiarity_n with_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o great_a honour_n say_v to_o be_v do_v to_o he_o of_o his_o statue_n and_o inscription_n at_o rome_n peter_n victory_n over_o he_o by_o raise_v one_o from_o the_o dead_a simon_n attempt_v to_o fly_v be_v by_o peter_n prayer_n hinder_v fall_v down_o and_o dies_z nero_n displeasure_n against_o peter_n whence_o his_o be_v cast_v into_o prison_n his_o flight_n thence_o and_o be_v bring_v back_o by_o christ_n appear_v to_o he_o crucify_a with_o his_o head_n downward_o and_o why_o the_o place_n of_o his_o martyrdom_n and_o burial_n the_o original_a and_o greatness_n of_o s._n peter_n church_n in_o rome_n his_o episcopal_a chair_n pretend_v to_o be_v still_o keep_v there_o hither_o to_o in_o draw_v of_o the_o life_n of_o this_o great_a apostle_n we_o have_v have_v a_o infallible_a guide_n to_o conduct_v and_o lead_v we_o but_o the_o sacred_a story_n break_v off_o here_o force_v we_o to_o look_v abroad_o and_o to_o pick_v up_o what_o memoires_n the_o ancient_n have_v leave_v we_o in_o this_o matter_n which_o we_o shall_v for_o the_o main_n digest_v according_a to_o the_o order_n wherein_o baronius_n and_o other_o ecclesiastic_a writer_n have_v dispose_v the_o series_n of_o s._n peter_n life_n reserve_v what_o be_v just_o questionable_a to_o a_o more_o particular_a examination_n afterward_o and_o that_o we_o may_v present_v the_o account_n more_o entire_a and_o perfect_a we_o must_v step_v back_o a_o little_a in_o point_n of_o time_n that_o so_o we_o may_v go_v forward_o with_o great_a advantage_n we_o be_v to_o know_v therefore_o that_o during_o the_o time_n of_o peace_n and_o calmness_n which_o the_o church_n enjoy_v after_o saul_n persecution_n when_o s._n peter_n go_v down_o to_o visit_v the_o church_n he_o be_v say_v to_o have_v go_v to_o antioch_n where_o great_a number_n of_o jew_n inhabit_v and_o there_o to_o have_v plant_v the_o christian_a faith_n that_o he_o found_v a_o church_n here_o xliii_o 〈◊〉_d express_o tell_v we_o and_o by_o 9_o other_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o himself_o be_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o this_o see_n sure_a i_o be_o that_o 1._o s._n chrysostom_n reckon_v it_o one_o of_o the_o great_a honour_n of_o that_o city_n that_o s._n peter_n stay_v so_o long_o there_o and_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o it_o succeed_v he_o in_o that_o see_n the_o care_n and_o precedency_n of_o this_o church_n he_o have_v between_o six_o and_o seven_o year_n not_o that_o he_o stay_v there_o all_o that_o time_n but_o that_o have_v order_v and_o dispose_v thing_n to_o the_o best_a advantage_n he_o return_v to_o other_o affair_n and_o exigency_n of_o the_o church_n confirm_v the_o new_a plantation_n bring_v in_o cornelius_n and_o his_o family_n and_o in_o he_o the_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o gentile_n conversion_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ._n after_o which_o he_o return_v unto_o jerusalem_n where_o he_o be_v imprison_v by_o herod_n and_o miraculous_o deliver_v by_o a_o angel_n send_v from_o heaven_n 2._o what_o become_v of_o peter_n after_o his_o deliverance_n out_o of_o prison_n be_v not_o certain_o know_v probable_o he_o may_v preach_v in_o some_o part_v a_o little_o further_a distant_a from_o judaea_n as_o we_o be_v tell_v 24._o he_o do_v at_o 〈◊〉_d and_o in_o the_o country_n thereabouts_o though_o i_o confess_v the_o evidence_n to_o i_o be_v not_o convince_a after_o this_o he_o resolve_v upon_o a_o journey_n to_o rome_n where_o most_o agree_v he_o arrive_v about_o the_o second_o year_n of_o the_o emperor_n claudius_n seq_n orosius_n tell_v we_o that_o come_v to_o rome_n he_o bring_v prosperity_n along_o with_o he_o to_o that_o city_n for_o beside_o several_a other_o extraordinary_a advantage_n which_o at_o that_o time_n happen_v to_o it_o this_o be_v not_o the_o least_o observable_a that_o camillus_n scribonianus_n governor_n of_o dalmatia_n solicit_v the_o army_n to_o rebel_v against_o the_o emperor_n the_o eagle_n their_o military_a standard_n remain_v so_o fast_o in_o the_o ground_n that_o no_o power_n nor_o strength_n be_v able_a to_o pluck_v they_o up_o with_o which_o unusual_a accident_n the_o mind_n of_o the_o soldier_n be_v surprise_v and_o startle_v and_o turn_v their_o sword_n against_o the_o author_n of_o the_o sedition_n continue_v firm_a and_o loyal_a in_o their_o obedience_n whereby_o a_o dangerous_a rebellion_n be_v prevent_v likely_a enough_o otherwise_o to_o have_v break_v out_o this_o he_o ascribe_v to_o s._n peter_n come_v to_o rome_n and_o the_o first_o plantation_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n in_o that_o city_n heaven_n beginning_n more_o particular_o to_o smile_v upon_o that_o place_n at_o his_o first_o come_v thither_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o at_o his_o first_o arrival_n he_o dispose_v himself_o among_o the_o jew_n his_o countryman_n who_o ever_o since_o the_o time_n of_o augustus_n have_v dwell_v in_o the_o region_n beyond_o tybur_n but_o when_o afterward_o he_o begin_v to_o preach_v to_o the_o gentile_n he_o be_v force_v to_o change_v his_o lodging_n and_o be_v take_v in_o by_o one_o pudens_n a_o senator_n late_o convert_v to_o the_o faith_n here_o he_o close_o ply_v his_o main_a office_n and_o employment_n to_o establish_v christianity_n in_o that_o place_n here_o we_o be_v tell_v 270._o he_o meet_v with_o philo_n the_o jew_n late_o come_v on_o his_o second_o embassy_n unto_o rome_n in_o the_o behalf_n of_o his_o countryman_n at_o alexandria_n and_o to_o have_v contract_v a_o intimate_a friendship_n and_o acquaintance_n with_o he_o and_o now_o it_o be_v say_v 16._o baronius_n that_o peter_n be_v mindful_a of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o have_v found_v in_o pontus_n galatia_n cappadocia_n bythinia_n and_o asia_n the_o less_o write_v his_o first_o epistle_n to_o they_o which_o he_o probable_o infer_v hence_o that_o s._n mark_n be_v yet_o with_o he_o at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o date_n of_o this_o epistle_n it_o must_v be_v write_v at_o least_o some_o time_n this_o year_n for_o that_o now_o it_o be_v that_o s._n mark_n be_v send_v to_o preach_v and_o propagate_v the_o faith_n in_o egypt_n next_o to_o the_o plant_n religion_n at_o rome_n he_o take_v care_n to_o propagate_v it_o in_o the_o western_a part_n and_o to_o that_o end_n if_o we_o may_v believe_v one_o 751._o of_o those_o that_o pretend_v to_o be_v his_o successor_n he_o send_v abroad_o disciple_n into_o several_a province_n that_o so_o their_o sound_n may_v go_v into_o all_o the_o earth_n and_o their_o word_n into_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 3._o it_o happen_v that_o after_o s._n peter_n have_v be_v several_a year_n at_o rome_n claudius_n the_o emperor_n take_v advantage_n of_o some_o sedition_n and_o tumult_n raise_v by_o the_o jew_n by_o a_o public_a edict_n 297._o banish_v they_o out_o of_o rome_n in_o the_o number_n of_o who_o s._n peter_n they_o say_v depart_v thence_o and_o return_v back_o to_o jerusalem_n where_o he_o be_v present_a at_o that_o great_a apostolical_a synod_n of_o which_o before_o after_o this_o we_o be_v leave_v under_o great_a uncertainty_n how_o he_o dispose_v of_o himself_o for_o many_o year_n confident_a we_o may_v be_v that_o he_o be_v not_o idle_a but_o spend_v his_o time_n sometime_o in_o preach_v in_o the_o eastern_a part_n sometime_o in_o other_o part_n of_o the_o world_n as_o
man_n in_o such_o circumstance_n with_o the_o least_o pretence_n of_o reason_n lie_v claim_v to_o merit_v or_o boast_v of_o his_o own_o achievement_n hence_o the_o apostle_n magnify_v the_o evangelical_n method_n of_o justification_n above_o that_o of_o 〈◊〉_d law_n that_o it_o whole_o exclude_v all_o proud_a 〈◊〉_d upon_o ourselves_o where_o be_v 〈◊〉_d then_o it_o be_v exclude_v by_o what_o law_n of_o work_n nay_o but_o by_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n the_o 27._o moysaicall_a oeconomy_n foster_v man_n up_o in_o proud_a and_o high_a thought_n of_o themselves_o they_o look_v upon_o themselves_o as_o a_o peculiar_a people_n honour_v above_o all_o other_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n invest_v with_o mighty_a privilege_n &_o c._n whereas_o the_o gospel_n proceed_v upon_o other_o principle_n take_v away_o all_o foundation_n of_o pride_n by_o acknowledge_v our_o acceptance_n with_o god_n and_o the_o power_n whereby_o we_o be_v enable_v to_o make_v good_a the_o term_n and_o condition_n of_o it_o to_o be_v the_o mere_a result_n of_o the_o divine_a grace_n and_o mercy_n and_o that_o the_o whole_a scheme_n of_o our_o salvation_n as_o it_o be_v the_o contrivance_n of_o the_o divine_a wisdom_n so_o be_v the_o purchase_n of_o the_o merit_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o our_o crucify_a saviour_n nor_o be_v faith_n itself_o less_o than_o other_o grace_n a_o act_n of_o evangelical_n obedience_n and_o if_o separate_v from_o they_o be_v of_o no_o moment_n or_o value_n in_o the_o account_n of_o heaven_n though_o i_o have_v all_o 2._o faith_n and_o have_v no_o charity_n i_o be_o nothing_o all_o faith_n be_v it_o of_o what_o kind_n soever_o to_o this_o may_v be_v add_v that_o no_o tolerable_a account_n can_v be_v give_v why_o that_o which_o be_v on_o all_o hand_n grant_v to_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o our_o salvation_n such_o be_v evangelical_n obedience_n shall_v not_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o our_o justification_n and_o at_o the_o great_a day_n christian_n shall_v be_v acquit_v or_o condemn_v according_a as_o in_o this_o world_n they_o have_v fulfil_v or_o neglect_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o decretory_a sentence_n of_o absolution_n that_o shall_v then_o be_v pass_v upon_o good_a man_n shall_v be_v nothing_o but_o a_o public_a and_o solemn_a declaration_n of_o that_o private_a sentence_n of_o justification_n that_o be_v pass_v upon_o they_o in_o this_o world_n so_o that_o upon_o the_o same_o term_n that_o they_o be_v justify_v now_o they_o shall_v be_v justify_v and_o acquit_v then_o and_o upon_o the_o same_o term_n that_o they_o shall_v then_o be_v judge_v and_o acquit_v they_o be_v justify_v now_o viz._n a_o hearty_a belief_n and_o a_o sincere_a obedience_n to_o the_o gospel_n from_o all_o which_o i_o hope_v it_o be_v evident_a that_o when_o s._n paul_n deny_v man_n to_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n by_o work_n he_o either_o mean_n work_v do_v before_o conversion_n and_o by_o the_o strength_n of_o man_n natural_a power_n such_o as_o enable_v they_o to_o pride_n and_o boast_v themselves_o or_o which_o mostwhat_o include_v the_o other_o the_o work_n of_o the_o mosaic_a law_n and_o indeed_o though_o the_o controversy_n on_o foot_n in_o those_o time_n do_v not_o plain_o determine_v his_o reason_n that_o way_n yet_o the_o consideration_n which_o we_o have_v now_o suggest_v sufficient_o show_v that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v mean_v in_o any_o other_o sense_n 16._o consect_n ii_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n paul_n and_o s._n james_n about_o justification_n be_v fair_o consistent_a with_o each_o other_o for_o see_v s._n paul_n design_n in_o exclude_v work_n from_o justification_n be_v only_o to_o deny_v the_o work_n of_o the_o jewish_a law_n or_o those_o that_o be_v wrought_v by_o our_o own_o strength_n and_o in_o assert_v that_o in_o opposition_n to_o such_o work_v we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n he_o mean_v no_o more_o than_o that_o either_o we_o be_v justify_v in_o a_o evangelical_n way_n or_o more_o particular_o by_o faith_n intend_v a_o practical_a belief_n include_v evangelical_n obedience_n and_o see_v on_o the_o other_o hand_n s._n james_n in_o affirm_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o work_n and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o by_o work_n mean_v no_o more_o than_o evangelical_n obedience_n in_o opposition_n to_o a_o naked_a and_o a_o empty_a faith_n these_o two_o be_v so_o far_o from_o quarrel_v that_o they_o mutual_o embrace_v each_o other_o and_o both_o in_o the_o main_n pursue_v the_o same_o design_n and_o indeed_o if_o any_o disagreement_n seem_v between_o they_o it_o be_v most_o reasonable_a that_o s._n paul_n shall_v be_v expound_v by_o s._n james_n not_o only_o because_o his_o proposition_n be_v so_o express_a and_o positive_a and_o not_o just_o liable_a to_o ambiguity_n but_o because_o he_o write_v some_o competent_a time_n after_o the_o other_o and_o consequent_o as_o he_o perfect_o understand_v his_o meaning_n so_o he_o be_v capable_a to_o countermine_v those_o ill_a principle_n which_o some_o man_n have_v build_v upon_o s._n paul_n assertion_n for_o it_o be_v evident_a from_o several_a passage_n in_o s._n paul_n epistle_n that_o even_o then_o many_o begin_v to_o mistake_v his_o doctrine_n and_o from_o his_o assertion_n about_o justification_n by_o faith_n and_o not_o by_o work_n to_o infer_v proposition_n that_o may_v serve_v the_o purpose_n of_o a_o bad_a life_n they_o slanderous_o report_v he_o to_o say_v that_o we_o may_v do_v evil_a that_o good_a may_v come_v that_o we_o may_v 8._o continue_v in_o sin_n that_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o gospel_n may_v the_o more_o abound_v they_o think_v that_o so_o 1._o long_o as_o they_o do_v but_o believe_v the_o gospel_n in_o the_o naked_a notion_n and_o speculation_n of_o it_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o recommend_v they_o to_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o to_o serve_v all_o the_o purpose_n of_o justification_n and_o salvation_n however_o they_o shape_v and_o steer_v their_o life_n against_o these_o man_n it_o be_v beyond_o all_o question_n plain_a that_o s._n james_n level_v his_o epistle_n to_o batter_v down_o the_o grow_a doctrine_n of_o libertinism_n and_o profaneness_n to_o show_v the_o insufficiency_n of_o a_o naked_a faith_n and_o a_o empty_a profession_n of_o religion_n that_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o recommend_v we_o to_o the_o divine_a acceptance_n and_o to_o justify_v we_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o heaven_n bare_o to_o believe_v 〈◊〉_d the_o gospel_n unless_o we_o real_o obey_v and_o practice_v it_o that_o a_o faith_n destitute_a of_o this_o evangelical_n obedience_n be_v fruitless_a and_o unprofitable_a to_o salvation_n that_o it_o be_v by_o these_o work_v that_o faith_n must_v appear_v to_o be_v vital_a and_o sincere_a that_o not_o only_a rahab_n but_o abraham_n the_o father_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v justify_v not_o by_o a_o bare_a belief_n of_o god_n promise_n but_o a_o 〈◊〉_d obedience_n to_o god_n command_n in_o the_o ready_a offer_n of_o his_o son_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o his_o faith_n and_o obedience_n do_v cooperate_v and_o conspire_v together_o to_o render_v he_o capable_a of_o god_n favour_n and_o approbation_n and_o that_o herein_o the_o scripture_n be_v fulfil_v which_o say_v that_o abraham_n believe_v god_n and_o it_o be_v impute_v to_o he_o for_o righteousness_n whence_o by_o the_o way_n nothing_o can_v be_v clear_a than_o that_o both_o these_o apostle_n intend_v the_o same_o thing_n by_o faith_n in_o the_o case_n of_o abraham_n justification_n and_o its_o be_v impute_v to_o he_o for_o 〈◊〉_d viz._n a_o practical_a belief_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o command_n of_o god_n that_o it_o follow_v hence_o that_o faith_n be_v not_o of_o itself_o sufficient_a to_o justify_v and_o make_v we_o acceptable_a to_o god_n unless_o a_o proportionable_a obedience_n be_v join_v with_o it_o without_o which_o faith_n serve_v no_o more_o to_o these_o end_n and_o purpose_n than_o a_o body_n destitute_a of_o the_o soul_n to_o animate_v and_o enliven_v it_o be_v capable_a to_o exercise_v the_o function_n and_o office_n of_o the_o natural_a life_n his_o meaning_n in_o short_a be_v nothing_o else_o than_o that_o good_a work_n or_o evangelical_n obedience_n be_v according_a to_o the_o divine_a appointment_n the_o condition_n of_o the_o gospel-covenant_n without_o which_o it_o be_v in_o vain_a for_o any_o to_o hope_v for_o that_o pardon_n which_o christ_n have_v purchase_v and_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o eternal_a life_n the_o end_n of_o s._n paul_n life_n the_o life_n of_o s._n andrew_n st._n andrew_n he_o be_v fasten_v to_o a_o cross_n since_o distinguish_v by_o his_o name_n by_o y_z e_z proconsul_n at_o patrae_n a_o city_n of_o achaia_n from_o which_o he_o preach_v several_a day_n to_o y_z e_z spectator_n s._n hierom._n baron_n nov_n 29._o st._n andrew_n crucifixion_n matth._n 23._o
a_o circumstance_n the_o more_o considerable_a because_o speak_v at_o the_o same_o time_n when_o peter_n be_v in_o council_n who_o produce_v no_o such_o intimation_n 1525._o of_o his_o authority_n have_v the_o champion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o such_o a_o passage_n for_o peter_n judiciary_n authority_n and_o power_n it_o will_v no_o doubt_n have_v make_v a_o loud_a noise_n in_o the_o world_n than_o thou_o be_v peter_n or_o feed_v my_o sheep_n 5._o he_o administer_v his_o province_n with_o all_o possible_a care_n and_o industry_n omit_v no_o part_n of_o a_o diligent_a and_o faithful_a guide_n of_o soul_n strengthen_v the_o weak_a inform_v the_o ignorant_a reduce_v the_o erroneous_a reprove_v the_o obstinate_a and_o by_o the_o constancy_n of_o his_o preach_v conquer_a the_o stubbornness_n of_o that_o perverse_a and_o refractory_a generation_n that_o he_o have_v to_o deal_v with_o many_o of_o the_o noble_a and_o the_o better_a sort_n be_v bring_v over_o to_o a_o compliance_n with_o the_o christian_a faith_n so_o careful_a so_o successful_a in_o his_o charge_n that_o he_o awaken_v 64._o the_o spite_n and_o malice_n of_o his_o enemy_n to_o conspire_v his_o ruin_n a_o sort_n of_o man_n of_o who_o the_o apostle_n have_v give_v too_o true_a a_o character_n that_o they_o please_v not_o god_n and_o be_v contrary_a to_o all_o man_n vex_v they_o be_v to_o see_v that_o s._n paul_n by_o appeal_n to_o caesar_n have_v escape_v their_o 63._o hand_n malice_n be_v as_o greedy_a and_o insatiable_a as_o hell_n itself_o and_o therefore_o now_o turn_v their_o revenge_n upon_o s._n james_n which_o not_o be_v able_a to_o effect_v under_o festus_n his_o government_n they_o more_o effectual_o attempt_v under_o the_o procuratorship_n of_o albinus_n his_o successor_n ananus_fw-la the_o young_a than_o highpriest_n and_o of_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o sadducee_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v 698._o josephus_n speak_v of_o this_o very_a passage_n of_o all_o other_o the_o most_o merciless_a and_o implacable_a justicer_n resolve_v to_o dispatch_v he_o before_o the_o new_a governor_n can_v arrive_v to_o this_o end_n a_o council_n be_v hasty_o summon_v and_o the_o apostle_n with_o some_o other_o arraign_v and_o condemn_v as_o violator_n of_o the_o law_n but_o that_o the_o thing_n may_v be_v carry_v in_o a_o more_o plausible_a and_o popular_a way_n they_o set_v the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n crafts-master_n in_o the_o art_n of_o dissimulation_n at_o work_n to_o ensnare_v he_o who_o come_v to_o he_o begin_v by_o flatter_a insinuatious_a to_o set_v upon_o he_o they_o tell_v he_o that_o 64_o they_o all_o have_v a_o mighty_a confidence_n in_o he_o and_o that_o the_o whole_a nation_n as_o well_o as_o they_o give_v he_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o most_o just_a man_n and_o one_o that_o be_v no_o respecter_n of_o person_n that_o therefore_o they_o desire_v he_o will_v correct_v the_o error_n and_o false_a opinion_n which_o the_o people_n have_v of_o jesus_n who_o they_o look_v upon_o as_o the_o messiah_n and_o will_v take_v this_o opportunity_n of_o the_o universal_a confluence_n to_o the_o paschal_n solemnity_n to_o set_v they_o right_o in_o their_o notion_n about_o these_o thing_n and_o will_v to_o that_o end_n go_v up_o with_o they_o to_o the_o top_n of_o the_o temple_n where_o he_o may_v be_v see_v and_o hear_v by_o all_o be_v advantageous_o place_v upon_o a_o pinnacle_n or_o wing_n of_o the_o temple_n they_o make_v this_o address_n to_o he_o tell_v we_o o_o justus_n who_o we_o have_v all_o the_o reason_n in_o the_o world_n to_o believe_v that_o see_v the_o people_n be_v thus_o general_o lead_v away_o with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n that_o be_v crucify_v tell_v we_o what_o be_v this_o institution_n of_o the_o crucify_a jesus_n to_o which_o the_o apostle_n answer_v with_o a_o audible_a voice_n why_o do_v you_o inquire_v of_o jesus_n the_o son_n of_o man_n he_o sit_v in_o heaven_n on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o majesty_n on_o high_a and_o will_v come_v again_o in_o the_o cloud_n of_o heaven_n the_o people_n below_o hear_v it_o glorify_v the_o bless_a jesus_n and_o open_o proclaim_v hosanna_n to_o the_o son_n of_o david_n the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n perceive_v now_o that_o they_o have_v over-shot_a themselves_o and_o that_o instead_o of_o reclaim_v they_o have_v confirm_v the_o people_n in_o their_o error_n that_o there_o be_v no_o way_n leave_v but_o present_o to_o dispatch_v he_o that_o by_o his_o sad_a fate_n other_o may_v be_v warn_v not_o to_o believe_v he_o whereupon_o sudden_o cry_v out_o that_o justus_n himself_o be_v seduce_v and_o become_v a_o impostor_n they_o throw_v he_o down_o from_o the_o place_n where_o he_o stand_v though_o bruise_v he_o be_v not_o kill_v by_o the_o fall_n but_o recover_v so_o much_o strength_n as_o to_o get_v upon_o his_o knee_n and_o pray_v to_o heaven_n for_o they_o malice_n be_v of_o too_o bad_a a_o nature_n either_o to_o be_v pacify_v with_o kindness_n or_o satisfy_v with_o cruelty_n jealousy_n be_v not_o more_o the_o rage_n of_o a_o man_n than_o malice_n be_v the_o rage_n of_o the_o devil_n the_o very_a soul_n and_o spirit_n of_o the_o apostate_n nature_n little_a portion_n of_o revenge_n do_v but_o inflame_v it_o and_o serve_v to_o flesh_n it_o up_o into_o a_o fierce_a violence_n vex_v that_o they_o have_v not_o do_v his_o work_n they_o fall_v afresh_o upon_o the_o poor_a remainder_n of_o his_o life_n and_o while_o he_o be_v yet_o at_o prayer_n and_o that_o a_o rechabite_v who_o stand_v by_o which_o say_v 441._o epiphanius_n be_v symeon_n his_o kinsman_n and_o successor_n step_v in_o and_o entreat_v they_o to_o spare_v he_o a_o just_a and_o a_o righteous_a man_n and_o who_o be_v then_o pray_v for_o they_o they_o begin_v to_o load_v he_o with_o a_o shower_n of_o stone_n till_o one_o more_o merciful_o cruel_a than_o the_o rest_n with_o a_o fuller_n club_n beat_v out_o his_o brain_n thus_o die_v this_o good_a man_n in_o the_o xcvi_o year_n of_o his_o age_n and_o about_o ibid._n xxiv_o year_n after_o christ_n ascension_n into_o heaven_n as_o epiphanius_n tell_v we_o be_v take_v away_o to_o the_o great_a grief_n and_o regret_n of_o all_o good_a man_n yea_o of_o all_o sober_a and_o just_a person_n even_o among_o the_o jew_n themselves_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o 698._o josephus_n himself_o confess_v speak_v of_o this_o matter_n he_o be_v bury_v say_v 33._o gregory_n bishop_n of_o tours_n upon_o mount_n olivet_n in_o a_o tomb_n which_o he_o have_v build_v for_o himself_o and_o wherein_o he_o have_v bury_v zacharias_n and_o old_a simeon_n which_o i_o be_o rather_o inclinable_a to_o believe_v than_o what_o 65_o hegesippus_n report_v that_o he_o be_v bury_v near_o the_o temple_n in_o the_o place_n of_o his_o martyrdom_n and_o that_o a_o monument_n be_v there_o erect_v for_o he_o which_o remain_v a_o long_a time_n after_o for_o the_o jew_n be_v not_o ordinary_o wont_a to_o bury_v within_o the_o city_n much_o less_o so_o near_o the_o temple_n and_o least_o of_o all_o will_v they_o suffer_v he_o who_o as_o a_o blasphemer_n and_o impostor_n they_o have_v so_o late_o put_v to_o death_n 6._o he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o exemplary_a and_o extraordinary_a piety_n and_o devotion_n educate_v under_o the_o strict_a rule_n and_o institution_n of_o religion_n a_o priest_n as_o we_o may_v probable_o guess_v of_o the_o ancient_a order_n of_o the_o rechabite_v or_o rather_o as_o 56._o epiphanius_n conjecture_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d according_a to_o the_o most_o ancient_a order_n and_o form_n of_o priesthood_n when_o the_o sacerdotal_a office_n be_v the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o first-born_a and_o such_o be_v s._n james_n the_o elder_a son_n of_o joseph_n and_o thereby_o sanctify_v and_o set_v apart_o for_o it_o though_o whether_o this_o way_n of_o priesthood_n at_o any_o time_n hold_v under_o the_o mosaic_a dispensation_n we_o have_v no_o intimation_n in_o the_o holy_a story_n but_o however_o he_o come_v by_o it_o upon_o some_o such_o account_n it_o must_v be_v that_o he_o have_v a_o privilege_n which_o the_o ibid._n ancicnt_n say_v be_v peculiar_a to_o he_o probable_o because_o more_o frequent_o make_v use_n of_o by_o he_o than_o by_o any_o other_o to_o enter_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o into_o the_o sancta_fw-la sanstorum_n or_o most_o holy_a of_o all_o but_o the_o sanctuary_n or_o holy_a place_n whither_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o aaronical_a order_n may_v come_v prayer_n be_v his_o constant_a business_n and_o delight_n he_o seem_v to_o live_v upon_o it_o and_o to_o trade_n in_o nothing_o but_o the_o frequent_a return_n of_o converse_n with_o heayen_n and_o be_v therefore_o wont_a to_o retire_v alone_o into_o the_o temple_n to_o pray_v which_o he_o always_o perform_v kneel_v and_o with_o the_o great_a reverence_n till_o by_o
s._n thomas_n dispatch_v thaddaeus_n the_o apostle_n to_o abgarus_n governor_n of_o edessa_n where_o he_o heal_v disease_n wrought_v miracle_n expound_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christianity_n and_o convert_v abgarus_n and_o his_o people_n to_o the_o faith_n for_o all_o which_o pain_n when_o the_o toparch_n offer_v he_o vast_a gift_n and_o present_n he_o refuse_v they_o with_o a_o noble_a scorn_n tell_v he_o they_o have_v little_a reason_n to_o receive_v from_o other_o what_o they_o have_v free_o relinquish_v and_o leave_v themselves_o a_o large_a account_n of_o this_o whole_a affair_n be_v extant_a in_o eusebius_n translate_v by_o he_o out_o of_o syriack_n from_o the_o record_n of_o the_o city_n of_o edessa_n this_o thaddaeus_n 10._o s._n hierom_n express_o make_v to_o be_v our_o s._n judas_n though_o his_o bare_a authority_n be_v not_o in_o this_o case_n sufficient_a evidence_n especial_o since_o 〈◊〉_d make_v he_o no_o more_o than_o one_o of_o the_o seventy_o disciple_n which_o he_o will_v scarce_o have_v do_v have_v he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o twelve_o he_o call_v he_o indeed_o a_o apostle_n but_o that_o may_v imply_v no_o more_o than_o according_a to_o the_o large_a acception_n of_o the_o word_n that_o he_o be_v a_o disciple_n a_o companion_n and_o a_o assistant_n to_o they_o as_o we_o know_v the_o seventy_o eminent_o be_v nor_o be_v any_o thing_n more_o common_a in_o ancient_a ecclesiastic_a writer_n than_o for_o the_o first_o planter_n and_o propagater_n of_o christian_a religion_n in_o any_o country_n to_o be_v honour_v with_o the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o apostle_n but_o however_o this_o be_v at_o his_o first_o set_v out_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n he_o go_v up_o and_o down_o judaea_n and_o 〈◊〉_d then_o through_o samaria_n into_o idumea_n and_o to_o the_o city_n of_o arabia_n and_o the_o neighbour_n country_n yea_o to_o syria_n and_o mesopotamia_n 202._o nicephorus_n add_v that_o he_o come_v at_o last_o to_o edessa_n where_o abgarus_n be_v governor_n and_o where_o the_o other_o thaddeus_n one_o of_o the_o seventy_o have_v be_v before_o he_o here_o he_o perfect_v what_o the_o other_o have_v begin_v and_o have_v by_o his_o sermon_n and_o miracle_n establish_v the_o religion_n of_o our_o saviour_n die_v a_o peaceable_a and_o a_o quiet_a death_n though_o 148._o dorotheus_n make_v he_o slay_v at_o berytus_n and_o honourable_o bury_v there_o by_o the_o almost_o general_a consent_n of_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n he_o be_v say_v to_o have_v travel_v into_o persia_n where_o after_o great_a success_n in_o his_o apostolical_a ministry_n for_o many_o year_n he_o be_v at_o last_o for_o his_o free_a and_o open_o reprove_v the_o superstitious_a rite_n and_o usage_n of_o the_o magi_n cruel_o put_v to_o death_n 4._o that_o he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o marry_a apostle_n sufficient_o appear_v from_o his_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o grandson_n mention_v by_o 89._o 〈◊〉_d of_o who_o hegesippus_n give_v this_o account_n domitian_n the_o emperor_n who_o enormous_a wickedness_n have_v awaken_v in_o he_o the_o quick_a jealousy_n and_o make_v he_o suspect_v every_o one_o that_o may_v look_v like_o a_o corrival_n in_o the_o empire_n have_v hear_v that_o there_o be_v some_o of_o the_o line_n of_o david_n and_o christ_n kindred_n that_o do_v yet_o remain_v two_o grandchild_n of_o s._n judas_n the_o brother_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v bring_v before_o he_o have_v confess_v that_o they_o be_v of_o the_o race_n and_o posterity_n of_o david_n he_o ask_v what_o possession_n and_o estate_n they_o have_v they_o tell_v he_o that_o they_o have_v but_o a_o very_a few_o acre_n of_o land_n out_o of_o the_o improvement_n whereof_o they_o both_o pay_v he_o tribute_n and_o maintain_v themselves_o with_o their_o own_o hard_a labour_n as_o by_o the_o hardness_n and_o callousness_n of_o their_o hand_n which_o they_o then_o show_v he_o do_v appear_v he_o then_o inquire_v of_o they_o concern_v christ_n and_o the_o state_n of_o his_o kingdom_n what_o kind_n of_o empire_n it_o be_v and_o when_o and_o where_o it_o will_v commence_v to_o which_o they_o reply_v that_o his_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n nor_o of_o the_o signory_n and_o dominion_n of_o it_o but_o heavenly_a and_o angelical_a and_o will_v final_o take_v place_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n when_o come_v with_o great_a glory_n he_o will_v judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a and_o award_v all_o man_n recompense_v according_a to_o their_o work_n the_o issue_n be_v that_o look_v upon_o the_o meanness_n and_o simplicity_n of_o the_o man_n as_o below_o his_o jealousy_n and_o fear_n he_o dismiss_v they_o without_o any_o severity_n use_v against_o they_o who_o be_v now_o behold_v not_o only_o as_o kinsman_n but_o as_o martyr_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v honour_v by_o all_o prefer_v to_o place_n of_o authority_n and_o government_n in_o the_o church_n and_o live_v till_o the_o time_n of_o trajan_n 5._o s._n judas_n leave_v only_o one_o epistle_n of_o catholic_n and_o universal_a concernment_n inscribe_v at_o large_a to_o all_o christian_n it_o be_v some_o time_n before_o it_o meet_v with_o general_a reception_n in_o the_o 25._o church_n or_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o the_o author_n indeed_o style_v not_o himself_o a_o apostle_n but_o no_o more_o do_v s._n james_n s._n john_n nor_o in_o some_o epistle_n s._n paul_n himself_o and_o why_o shall_v he_o fare_v the_o worse_a for_o his_o humility_n only_o for_o call_v himself_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n when_o he_o may_v have_v add_v not_o only_a apostle_n but_o the_o brother_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o best_a be_v he_o have_v add_v what_o be_v equivalent_a judas_n the_o brother_n of_o james_n a_o character_n that_o can_v belong_v to_o none_o but_o our_o apostle_n beside_o that_o the_o title_n of_o the_o epistle_n which_o be_v of_o great_a antiquity_n run_v thus_o the_o general_a epistle_n of_o judas_n the_o apostle_n one_o great_a argument_n as_o 〈◊〉_d s._n 〈◊〉_d inform_v we_o against_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o epistle_n of_o old_a be_v its_o quote_v a_o passage_n out_o of_o a_o apocryphal_a book_n of_o enoch_n this_o book_n call_v the_o apocalypse_n of_o enoch_n be_v very_o early_o extant_a in_o the_o church_n frequent_o mention_v and_o passage_n cite_v out_o of_o it_o by_o 〈◊〉_d tertullian_n clemens_n alexandrinus_n origen_n and_o other_o some_o of_o who_o account_v it_o little_o less_o 151._o than_o canonical_a but_o what_o if_o our_o apostle_n have_v it_o not_o out_o of_o this_o apocryphal_a book_n but_o from_o some_o prophecy_n currant_n from_o age_n to_o age_n hand_v to_o he_o by_o common_a tradition_n or_o immediate_o reveal_v to_o he_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n but_o suppose_v it_o take_v out_o of_o that_o book_n go_v under_o enoch_n name_n this_o make_v nothing_o against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o epistle_n every_o thing_n i_o hope_v be_v not_o present_o false_a that_o be_v contain_v in_o a_o apocryphal_a and_o uncanonical_a writing_n nor_o do_v the_o take_v a_o single_a testimony_n out_o of_o it_o any_o more_o infer_v the_o apostle_n approbation_n of_o all_o 9_o the_o rest_n than_o s._n paul_n quote_v a_o good_a sentence_n or_o two_o out_o of_o menander_n aratus_n and_o epimenides_n imply_v that_o he_o approve_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o write_n of_o those_o heathen_a poet_n and_o indeed_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o fit_a and_o proper_a than_o this_o way_n if_o we_o consider_v that_o the_o apostle_n in_o this_o epistle_n chiesly_a argue_v against_o the_o gnostic_n who_o main_o trade_v in_o such_o traditionary_a and_o apocryphal_a write_n and_o probable_o in_o this_o very_a book_n of_o enoch_n the_o same_o account_n may_v be_v give_v of_o that_o other_o passage_n in_o this_o epistle_n concern_v the_o contention_n between_o michael_n the_o archangel_n and_o the_o devil_n about_o the_o burial_n of_o moses_n his_o body_n no_o where_o extant_a in_o the_o holy_a record_n suppose_v to_o have_v be_v take_v out_o of_o a_o jewish_a writing_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o the_o dismission_n of_o moses_n mention_v by_o some_o of_o the_o greek_a 2._o father_n under_o the_o title_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o the_o ascension_n of_o moses_n in_o which_o this_o passage_n be_v upon_o record_n nor_o be_v it_o any_o more_o a_o wonder_n that_o s._n judas_n shall_v do_v this_o than_o that_o s._n paul_n shall_v put_v down_o janne_n and_o jambres_n for_o the_o two_o magician_n of_o pharaoh_n that_o oppose_v moses_n which_o he_o must_v either_o derive_v from_o tradition_n or_o fetch_v out_o of_o some_o uncanonical_a author_n of_o those_o time_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o their_o name_n in_o moses_n his_o relation_n of_o that_o matter_n but_o be_v these_o passage_n whence_o they_o will_v it_o be_v enough_o to_o we_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o
engage_v in_o the_o solemn_a celebration_n of_o divine_a worship_n and_o bind_v his_o foot_n with_o cord_n drag_v he_o through_o the_o street_n and_o the_o most_o craggy_a 37._o place_n to_o the_o bucelus_fw-la a_o precipice_n near_o the_o sea_n and_o for_o that_o night_n thrust_v he_o into_o prison_n where_o his_o soul_n be_v by_o a_o divine_a vision_n erect_v and_o encourage_v under_o the_o ruin_n of_o his_o shatter_a body_n early_o the_o next_o morning_n the_o tragedy_n begin_v again_o drag_v he_o about_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n till_o his_o flesh_n be_v rake_v off_o and_o his_o blood_n run_v out_o his_o spirit_n fail_v and_o he_o expire_v but_o their_o malice_n die_v not_o with_o he_o metaphrastes_n add_v that_o they_o burn_v his_o body_n who_o bone_n and_o ash_n the_o christian_n there_o decent_o entomb_v near_o the_o place_n where_o he_o be_v wont_a to_o preach_v his_o body_n at_o least_o the_o remain_v of_o it_o be_v afterward_o with_o great_a pomp_n remove_v from_o alexandria_n to_o venice_n where_o they_o be_v religious_o honour_v and_o he_o adopt_v as_o the_o tutelar_a saint_n and_o patron_n of_o that_o state_n and_o one_o of_o the_o rich_a and_o stately_a church_n erect_v to_o his_o memory_n that_o the_o world_n can_v boast_v of_o at_o this_o day_n he_o suffer_v in_o the_o month_n pharmuthi_fw-mi on_o the_o xxv_o of_o april_n though_o the_o certain_a year_n of_o his_o martyrdom_n be_v not_o precise_o determine_v by_o the_o ancient_n 〈◊〉_d kirstenius_fw-la out_o of_o the_o arabic_a memoires_n of_o his_o life_n say_v it_o be_v in_o the_o fourteen_o or_o the_o last_o year_n of_o claudius_n s._n 〈◊〉_d hierom_n place_v it_o in_o the_o eight_o of_o nero._n but_o extravagant_o wide_a be_v 2._o dorotheus_n his_o computation_n who_o make_v he_o to_o suffer_v in_o the_o time_n of_o trajan_n with_o as_o much_o truth_n as_o 209._o nicephorus_n on_o the_o other_o hand_n affirm_v he_o to_o have_v come_v into_o egypt_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o tiberius_n if_o in_o so_o great_a variety_n of_o opinion_n i_o may_v interpose_v my_o conjecture_n i_o shall_v reckon_v he_o to_o have_v suffer_v about_o the_o end_n of_o nero_n reign_n for_o suppose_v he_o to_o have_v come_v with_o s._n peter_n to_o rome_n about_o the_o five_o or_o six_o year_n of_o nero_n he_o may_v thence_o be_v dispatch_v to_o alexandria_n and_o spend_v the_o residue_n of_o his_o life_n and_o of_o that_o emperor_n reign_n in_o plant_v christianity_n in_o those_o part_n of_o the_o world_n sure_a i_o be_o that_o 172._o irenaeus_n report_v s._n mark_v to_o have_v outlive_v peter_n and_o paul_n and_o that_o after_o their_o decease_n he_o compose_v his_o gospel_n out_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v hear_v peter_n preach_v but_o whatever_o become_v of_o that_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o irenaeus_n suppose_v who_o supposition_n certain_o be_v not_o found_v upon_o mere_a fancy_n and_o conjecture_v that_o s._n mark_v for_o some_o considerable_a time_n survive_v the_o martyrdom_n of_o those_o two_o great_a apostle_n a_o passage_n that_o so_o trouble_a christophorson_n one_o of_o those_o who_o in_o these_o late_a age_n first_o translate_v eusebius_n into_o latin_n because_o cross_v the_o account_n of_o their_o writer_n in_o this_o matter_n that_o he_o choose_v rather_o to_o expunge_v the_o word_n decease_n and_o substitute_v another_o of_o a_o quite_o different_a sense_n express_o contrary_a to_o the_o faith_n of_o all_o ancient_a copy_n and_o to_o the_o most_o ancient_a version_n of_o irenaeus_n itself_o but_o to_o return_v s._n mark_v as_o to_o his_o 210._o person_n be_v of_o a_o middle_a size_n and_o stature_n his_o nose_n long_o his_o eye_n brow_n turn_v back_o his_o eye_n graceful_a and_o amiable_a his_o head_n bald_a his_o beard_n prolix_a and_o gray_a his_o gate_n quick_a the_o constitution_n of_o his_o body_n strong_a and_o healthful_a 5._o his_o gospel_n the_o only_a book_n he_o leave_v behind_o he_o be_v as_o before_o we_o observe_v write_v at_o the_o entreaty_n of_o the_o convert_v at_o 113._o rome_n who_o not_o content_a to_o have_v hear_v peter_n preach_v press_v s._n mark_v his_o disciple_n that_o he_o will_v commit_v to_o write_v a_o historical_a account_n of_o what_o he_o have_v deliver_v to_o they_o which_o he_o perform_v with_o no_o less_o faithfulness_n than_o brevity_n all_o which_o s._n peter_n peruse_v ratify_v with_o his_o authority_n and_o command_v to_o be_v public_o read_v in_o their_o religious_a assembly_n and_o though_o as_o we_o note_v but_o now_o irenaeus_n seem_v to_o intimate_v that_o it_o be_v write_v after_o peter_n death_n yet_o all_o that_o can_v be_v infer_v hence_o will_v be_v what_o in_o itself_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o no_o great_a moment_n and_o importance_n that_o the_o ancient_n be_v not_o agree_v in_o assign_v the_o exact_a time_n when_o the_o several_a gospel_n be_v publish_v to_o the_o world_n it_o be_v frequent_o style_v s._n peter_n gospel_n not_o so_o much_o because_o dictate_v by_o he_o to_o s._n mark_n as_o because_o he_o principal_o compose_v it_o out_o of_o that_o account_n citat_fw-la which_o s._n peter_n usual_o deliver_v in_o his_o discourse_n to_o the_o people_n which_o probable_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o what_o 30._o chrysostome_n observe_v that_o in_o his_o stile_n and_o manner_n of_o expression_n he_o delight_v to_o imitate_v s._n peter_n represent_v much_o in_o a_o few_o word_n though_o he_o common_o reduce_v the_o story_n of_o our_o saviour_n act_n into_o a_o narrow_a compass_n than_o s._n matthew_n yet_o want_v there_o not_o passage_n which_o he_o relate_v more_o large_o than_o he_o the_o last_o chapter_n of_o his_o gospel_n at_o least_o part_n of_o it_o be_v as_o 3._o hierom_n inform_v we_o want_v in_o all_o ancient_a greek_a copy_n reject_v upon_o pretence_n of_o some_o disagreement_n with_o the_o other_o gospel_n though_o as_o he_o there_o show_v they_o be_v fair_o consistent_a with_o each_o other_o his_o great_a impartiality_n in_o his_o relation_n appear_v from_o hence_o that_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o conceal_v the_o shameful_a lapse_n and_o denial_n of_o peter_n his_o 719._o dear_a tutor_n and_o master_n that_o he_o set_v it_o down_o with_o some_o particular_a circumstance_n and_o aggravation_n which_o the_o other_o evangelist_n take_v no_o notice_n of_o some_o dispute_n have_v be_v make_v in_o what_o language_n it_o be_v write_v whether_o in_o greek_a or_o latin_a that_o which_o seem_v to_o give_v most_o countenance_n to_o the_o latin_a original_a be_v the_o note_n that_o we_o find_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o syriac_a version_n of_o this_o gospel_n where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o mark_v preach_v and_o declare_v his_o holy_a gospel_n at_o rome_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o roman_a or_o the_o latin_a tongue_n a_o evidence_n that_o with_o i_o will_v almost_o carry_v the_o force_n of_o a_o demonstration_n be_v i_o assure_v that_o this_o note_n be_v of_o equal_a value_n and_o authority_n with_o that_o ancient_n version_n general_o suppose_v to_o come_v very_o few_o century_n short_a of_o the_o apostolic_a age._n but_o we_o know_v how_o usual_a it_o be_v for_o such_o addition_n to_o be_v make_v by_o some_o late_a hand_n and_o what_o credit_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o subscription_n at_o the_o end_n of_o s._n paul_n epistle_n we_o have_v show_v elsewhere_o beside_o that_o it_o be_v not_o here_o say_v that_o he_o write_v but_o that_o he_o preach_v his_o gospel_n at_o rome_n in_o that_o language_n the_o advocate_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n plead_v that_o it_o be_v very_o congruous_a and_o suitable_a that_o it_o shall_v at_o first_o be_v consign_v to_o write_v in_o that_o language_n be_v principal_o design_v for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o christian_n at_o rome_n a_o objection_n that_o will_v easy_o vanish_v when_o we_o consider_v that_o as_o the_o convert_n jew_n there_o understand_v very_o little_a latin_a so_o there_o be_v very_o few_o roman_n that_o understand_v not_o greek_a it_o be_v as_o appear_v from_o the_o writer_n of_o that_o age_n the_o gentile_a and_o fashionable_a language_n of_o those_o time_n nor_o can_v any_o good_a reason_n be_v assign_v why_o it_o shall_v be_v more_o inconvenient_a for_o s._n mark_v to_o write_v his_o gospel_n in_o greek_a for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o roman_n than_o that_o s._n paul_n shall_v in_o the_o same_o language_n write_v his_o epistle_n to_o that_o church_n the_o original_a greek_a copy_n write_v 562._o with_o s._n mark_n be_v own_o hand_n be_v say_v to_o be_v extant_a at_o venice_n at_o this_o day_n write_a they_o tell_v we_o by_o he_o at_o aquileia_n and_o thence_o after_o many_o hundred_o of_o year_n translate_v to_o venice_n where_o it_o be_v still_o preserve_v though_o the_o letter_n so_o wear_v out_o with_o length_n of_o time_n that_o they_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o
all_o measure_n and_o under_o the_o patronage_n of_o his_o name_n begin_v to_o set_v up_o for_o a_o party_n he_o severe_o rebuke_v they_o tell_v they_o that_o it_o be_v christ_n not_o he_o that_o be_v crucify_v for_o they_o that_o they_o have_v not_o be_v baptize_v into_o his_o name_n which_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o that_o he_o do_v not_o remember_v that_o he_o have_v baptize_v 〈◊〉_d three_o or_o four_o of_o they_o and_o be_v hearty_o glad_a he_o have_v baptize_v no_o more_o 〈◊〉_d a_o foundation_n may_v have_v be_v lay_v for_o that_o suspicion_n that_o this_o paul_n who_o they_o so_o much_o extol_v be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o minister_n of_o christ_n who_o our_o lord_n have_v appoint_v to_o plant_v and_o build_v up_o his_o church_n 4._o great_a be_v his_o temperance_n and_o sobriety_n so_o far_o from_o go_v beyond_o the_o bound_n of_o regularity_n that_o he_o abridge_v himself_o of_o the_o conveniency_n of_o lawful_a and_o necessary_a accommodation_n frequent_a his_o hungring_n and_o thirsting_n not_o constrain_v only_o but_o voluntary_a it_o be_v probable_o think_v that_o he_o very_o rare_o drink_v any_o wine_n certain_a that_o by_o abstinence_n and_o mortification_n he_o keep_v under_o and_o subdue_v his_o body_n reduce_v the_o extravagancy_n of_o the_o sensual_a appetite_n to_o a_o perfect_a subjection_n to_o the_o law_n of_o reason_n by_o this_o mean_n he_o easy_o get_v above_o the_o world_n and_o its_o charm_n and_o frown_n have_v his_o mind_n continual_o conversant_a in_o heaven_n his_o thought_n be_v fix_v there_o his_o desire_n always_o ascend_v thither_o what_o he_o teach_v other_o he_o practise_v himself_o his_o conversation_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o his_o desire_n be_v to_o depart_v and_o to_o be_v with_o christ_n this_o world_n do_v neither_o arrest_n his_o affection_n nor_o disturb_v his_o fear_n he_o be_v not_o take_v with_o its_o applause_n nor_o fright_v with_o its_o threaten_n he_o study_v not_o to_o please_v man_n nor_o value_v the_o censure_n and_o judgement_n which_o they_o pass_v upon_o he_o he_o be_v not_o greedy_a of_o a_o great_a estate_n or_o title_n of_o honour_n or_o rich_a present_n from_o man_n not_o seek_v they_o but_o they_o food_n and_o raiment_n be_v his_o bill_n of_o fare_n and_o more_o than_o this_o he_o never_o care_v for_o account_v that_o the_o less_o he_o be_v clog_v with_o these_o thing_n the_o light_a he_o shall_v march_v to_o heaven_n especial_o travel_v through_o a_o world_n overrun_v with_o trouble_n and_o persecution_n upon_o this_o account_n it_o be_v probable_a he_o keep_v himself_o always_o within_o a_o single_a life_n though_o there_o want_v not_o some_o of_o the_o ancient_n who_o express_o reckon_v he_o in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o marry_a apostle_n as_o 448._o clemens_n alexandrinus_n 30._o ignatius_n and_o some_o other_o it_o be_v true_a that_o passage_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o genuine_a epistle_n of_o ignatius_n but_o yet_o be_v extant_a in_o all_o those_o that_o be_v own_v and_o publish_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n though_o they_o have_v not_o be_v want_v to_o banish_v it_o out_o of_o the_o world_n have_v expunge_v s._n paul_n name_n out_o of_o some_o ancient_a manuscript_n as_o the_o learned_a bishop_n 〈◊〉_d usher_n have_v to_o their_o shame_n sufficient_o discover_v to_o the_o world_n but_o for_o the_o main_a of_o the_o question_n we_o can_v ready_o grant_v it_o the_o scripture_n seem_v most_o to_o favour_v it_o that_o though_o he_o assert_v his_o power_n and_o liberty_n to_o marry_v as_o well_o as_o the_o rest_n yet_o that_o he_o live_v always_o a_o single_a life_n 5._o his_o kindness_n and_o charity_n be_v true_o admirable_a he_o have_v a_o compassionate_a tenderness_n for_o the_o poor_a and_o a_o quick_a sense_n of_o the_o want_n of_o other_o to_o what_o church_n soever_o he_o come_v it_o be_v one_o of_o his_o first_o care_n to_o make_v provision_n for_o the_o poor_a and_o to_o stir_v up_o the_o bounty_n of_o the_o rich_a and_o the_o wealthy_a nay_o himself_o work_v often_o with_o his_o own_o hand_n not_o only_o to_o maintain_v himself_o but_o to_o help_v and_o relieve_v they_o but_o infinite_o great_a be_v his_o charity_n to_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n fear_v no_o danger_n refuse_v no_o labour_n go_v through_o good_a and_o evil_a report_n that_o he_o may_v gain_v man_n over_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n reduce_v they_o out_o of_o the_o crooked_a path_n of_o vice_n and_o idolatry_n and_o set_v they_o in_o the_o right_a way_n to_o eternal_a life_n nay_o so_o insatiable_a his_o thirst_n after_o the_o good_a of_o soul_n that_o he_o affirm_v that_o rather_o than_o his_o countryman_n the_o jew_n shall_v miscarry_v by_o not_o believe_v and_o entertain_v the_o gospel_n he_o can_v be_v content_a nay_o wish_a that_o himself_o may_v be_v accurse_v from_o christ_n for_o their_o sake_n i._n e._n that_o he_o may_v be_v anathematise_v and_o cut_v off_o from_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o only_o lose_v the_o honour_n of_o the_o apostolate_a but_o be_v reckon_v in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o abject_a and_o execrable_a person_n such_o as_o those_o be_v who_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n a_o instance_n of_o so_o large_a and_o passionate_a a_o charity_n that_o lest_o it_o may_v not_o find_v room_n in_o man_n belief_n he_o usher_v it_o in_o with_o this_o solemn_a appeal_n and_o attestation_n that_o he_o say_v the_o truth_n in_o christ_n and_o lie_v not_o his_o conscience_n bear_v he_o witness_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o as_o he_o be_v infinite_o solicitous_a to_o gain_v man_n over_o to_o the_o best_a religion_n in_o the_o world_n so_o be_v he_o not_o less_o careful_a to_o keep_v they_o from_o be_v seduce_v from_o it_o ready_a to_o suspect_v every_o thing_n that_o may_v corrupt_v their_o mind_n from_o the_o simplicity_n that_o be_v in_o christ._n i_o be_o jealous_a over_o you_o 2._o with_o a_o godly_a jealousy_n as_o he_o tell_v the_o church_n of_o corinth_n a_o 899._o affection_n of_o all_o other_o the_o most_o active_a and_o vigilant_a and_o which_o be_v wont_a to_o inspire_v man_n with_o the_o most_o passionate_a care_n and_o concernment_n for_o the_o good_a of_o those_o for_o who_o we_o have_v the_o high_a measure_n of_o love_n and_o kindness_n nor_o be_v his_o charity_n to_o man_n great_a than_o his_o zeal_n for_o god_n endeavour_v with_o all_o his_o might_n to_o promote_v the_o honour_n of_o his_o master_n indeed_o zeal_n seem_v to_o have_v have_v a_o deep_a foundation_n in_o the_o natural_a forwardness_n of_o his_o temper_n how_o exceed_o zealous_a be_v he_o while_o in_o the_o jew_n religion_n of_o the_o tradition_n of_o his_o father_n how_o earnest_a to_o vindicate_v and_o assert_v the_o divinity_n of_o the_o mosaic_a dispensation_n and_o to_o persecute_v all_o of_o a_o contrary_a way_n even_o to_o rage_n and_o madness_n and_o when_o afterward_o turn_v into_o a_o right_a 〈◊〉_d it_o run_v with_o as_o swift_a a_o current_n carry_v he_o out_o against_o all_o opposition_n to_o ruin_v the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n to_o beat_v down_o idolatry_n and_o to_o plant_v the_o world_n with_o right_a apprehension_n of_o god_n and_o the_o true_a notion_n of_o religion_n when_o at_o athens_n he_o see_v they_o so_o much_o overgrow_v with_o the_o gross_a superstition_n and_o idolatry_n give_v the_o honour_n that_o be_v alone_o due_a to_o god_n to_o statue_n and_o image_n his_o zeal_n begin_v to_o ferment_n and_o to_o boil_v up_o into_o 〈◊〉_d of_o indignation_n and_o he_o can_v not_o but_o let_v they_o know_v the_o resentment_n of_o his_o mind_n and_o how_o much_o herein_o they_o dishonour_v god_n the_o great_a parent_n and_o maker_n of_o the_o world_n 6._o this_o zeal_n must_v needs_o put_v he_o upon_o a_o mighty_a diligence_n and_o industry_n in_o the_o execution_n of_o his_o office_n warning_n reprove_v entreat_v persuade_v preach_v in_o season_n and_o out_o of_o season_n by_o night_n and_o by_o day_n by_o sea_n and_o land_n no_o pain_n too_o much_o to_o be_v take_v no_o danger_n too_o great_a to_o be_v overcome_v for_o five_o and_o thirty_o year_n after_o his_o conversion_n he_o 〈◊〉_d stay_v long_o in_o one_o place_n from_o jerusalem_n through_o arabia_n 〈◊〉_d greece_n round_o about_o to_o illyricum_n to_o rome_n and_o even_o to_o the_o utmost_a bound_n of_o the_o western-world_n full_o preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n run_v say_v s._n hierom_n from_o ocean_n to_o ocean_n like_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o heaven_n of_o which_o it_o be_v say_v his_o go_v forth_o be_v from_o the_o end_n of_o the_o heaven_n and_o his_o circuit_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o it_o soon_o want_a ground_n to_o tread_v on_o than_o a_o desire_n to_o propagate_v the_o faith_n of_o christ._n 223._o
〈◊〉_d compare_v he_o to_o a_o bird_n in_o the_o air_n that_o in_o a_o few_o year_n fly_v round_o the_o world_n isidore_n the_o 285._o pelusiot_n to_o a_o wing_a husbandman_n that_o fly_v from_o place_n to_o place_n to_o cultivate_v the_o world_n with_o the_o most_o excellent_a rule_n and_o institution_n of_o life_n and_o while_o the_o other_o apostle_n do_v as_o it_o be_v choose_v this_o or_o that_o particular_a province_n as_o the_o main_a sphere_n of_o their_o ministry_n s._n paul_n overran_a the_o whole_a world_n to_o its_o utmost_a bound_n and_o corner_n plant_v all_o place_n where_o he_o come_v with_o the_o divine_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n nor_o in_o this_o course_n be_v he_o tire_v out_o with_o the_o danger_n and_o difficulty_n that_o he_o meet_v with_o the_o trouble_n and_o opposition_n that_o be_v raise_v against_o he_o all_o which_o do_v but_o reflect_v the_o great_a lustre_n upon_o his_o patience_n whereof_o indeed_o as_o 8._o clement_n observe_v he_o become_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o most_o eminent_a pattern_n and_o exemplar_n endure_v the_o big_a trouble_n and_o persecution_n with_o a_o patience_n triumphant_a and_o unconquerable_a as_o will_v easy_o appear_v if_o we_o take_v but_o a_o survey_n of_o what_o trial_n and_o suffering_n he_o undergo_v some_o part_n whereof_o be_v brief_o sum_v up_o by_o himself_o in_o labour_n abundant_a in_o stripe_n above_o measure_n in_o prison_n 〈◊〉_d frequent_a in_o death_n oft_o thrice_o beat_v with_o rod_n once_o stone_v thrice_o suffer_v shipwreck_n a_o night_n and_o a_o day_n in_o the_o deep_a in_o journeying_n often_o in_o peril_n of_o water_n in_o peril_n of_o robber_n in_o peril_n by_o his_o own_o countryman_n in_o peril_n by_o the_o heathen_a in_o peril_n in_o the_o city_n in_o peril_n in_o the_o wilderness_n in_o peril_n in_o the_o sea_n in_o peril_n among_o false_a brethren_n in_o weariness_n in_o painfulness_n in_o watch_n often_o in_o hunger_n and_o thirst_n in_o fasting_n often_o in_o cold_a and_o nakedness_n and_o beside_o these_o thing_n that_o be_v without_o that_o which_o daily_o come_v upon_o he_o the_o care_n of_o all_o the_o church_n a_o account_n though_o very_o great_a yet_o far_o short_a of_o what_o he_o endure_v and_o wherein_o as_o 921._o 〈◊〉_d observe_v he_o do_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d modest_o keep_v himself_o within_o his_o measure_n for_o have_v he_o take_v the_o liberty_n full_o to_o have_v enlarge_v himself_o he_o may_v have_v fill_v hundred_o of_o martyrology_n with_o his_o suffering_n a_o thousand_o time_n be_v his_o life_n at_o stake_n in_o every_o suffering_n he_o be_v a_o martyr_n and_o what_o fall_v but_o in_o parcel_n upon_o other_o come_v all_o upon_o he_o while_o they_o skirmish_v only_o with_o single_a party_n he_o have_v the_o whole_a army_n of_o suffering_n to_o contend_v with_o all_o which_o he_o generous_o undergo_v with_o a_o soul_n as_o calm_v and_o serene_a as_o the_o morning-sun_n no_o spite_n or_o rage_n no_o fury_n or_o storm_n can_v ruffle_v and_o discompose_v his_o spirit_n nay_o those_o suffering_n which_o will_v have_v break_v the_o back_n of_o a_o ordinary_a patience_n do_v but_o make_v he_o rise_v up_o with_o the_o great_a eagerness_n and_o resolution_n for_o the_o do_v of_o his_o duty_n 7._o his_o patience_n will_v yet_o further_o appear_v from_o the_o consideration_n of_o another_o the_o last_o of_o those_o virtue_n we_o shall_v take_v notice_n of_o in_o he_o his_o constancy_n and_o fidelity_n in_o the_o discharge_n of_o his_o place_n and_o in_o the_o profession_n of_o religion_n can_v the_o power_n and_o policy_n of_o man_n and_o devil_n spite_n and_o opposition_n torment_n and_o threaten_n have_v be_v able_a to_o baffle_v he_o out_o of_o that_o religion_n wherein_o he_o have_v engage_v himself_o he_o must_v have_v sink_v under_o they_o and_o leave_v his_o station_n but_o his_o soul_n be_v steel_v with_o a_o courage_n and_o resolution_n that_o be_v impenetrable_a and_o which_o no_o temptation_n either_o from_o hope_n or_o fear_n can_v make_v any_o more_o impression_n upon_o than_o a_o arrow_n can_v that_o be_v shoot_v against_o a_o wall_n of_o marble_n he_o want_v not_o solicitation_n on_o either_o hand_n both_o from_o jew_n and_o gentile_n and_o questionless_a might_n in_o some_o degree_n have_v make_v his_o own_o term_n will_v he_o have_v be_v false_a to_o his_o trust_n and_o have_v quit_v that_o way_n that_o be_v then_o everywhere_o speak_v against_o but_o alas_o these_o thing_n weigh_v little_a with_o our_o apostle_n who_o count_v not_o 〈◊〉_d life_n to_o be_v dear_a unto_o he_o so_o that_o he_o may_v finish_v his_o course_n with_o joy_n and_o the_o ministry_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o therefore_o when_o under_o the_o sentence_n of_o death_n in_o his_o own_o apprehension_n can_v triumph_o say_v i_o have_v fight_v a_o good_a fight_n i_o have_v finish_v my_o course_n i_o have_v keep_v the_o faith_n and_o so_o indeed_o he_o do_v keep_v it_o inviolable_o undaunted_o to_o the_o last_o minute_n of_o his_o life_n the_o sum_n be_v he_o be_v a_o man_n in_o who_o the_o divine_a life_n do_v eminent_o manifest_a and_o display_v itself_o he_o live_v pious_o and_o devout_o sober_o and_o temperate_o just_o and_o righteous_o careful_a always_o to_o keep_v a_o conscience_n void_a of_o offence_n both_o towards_o god_n and_o men._n this_o he_o tell_v we_o be_v his_o support_n under_o suffering_n this_o the_o foundation_n of_o his_o confidence_n towards_o god_n and_o his_o firm_a hope_n of_o happiness_n in_o another_o world_n this_o be_v our_o rejoice_v the_o testimony_n of_o our_o conscience_n that_o in_o simplicity_n and_o godly_a 12._o sincerity_n we_o have_v have_v our_o conversation_n in_o the_o world_n 8._o it_o be_v not_o the_o least_o instance_n of_o his_o care_n and_o fidelity_n in_o his_o office_n that_o he_o do_v not_o only_o preach_v and_o plant_v christianity_n in_o all_o place_n whither_o he_o come_v but_o what_o he_o can_v not_o personal_o do_v he_o supply_v by_o write_v fourteen_o epistle_n he_o 〈◊〉_d upon_o record_n by_o which_o he_o be_v not_o only_o instrumental_a in_o propagate_a christian_a religion_n at_o first_o but_o have_v be_v useful_a to_o the_o world_n ever_o since_o in_o all_o age_n of_o the_o church_n we_o have_v all_o along_o in_o the_o history_n of_o his_o life_n take_v particular_a notice_n of_o they_o in_o their_o due_a place_n and_o order_n we_o shall_v here_o only_o make_v some_o general_a observation_n and_o remark_n upon_o they_o and_o that_o as_o to_o the_o stile_n and_o way_n wherein_o they_o be_v write_v their_o order_n and_o the_o subscription_n that_o be_v add_v to_o they_o for_o the_o apostle_n stile_n and_o manner_n of_o write_v it_o be_v plain_a and_o simple_a and_o though_o not_o set_v off_o with_o the_o elaborate_a artifices_fw-la and_o affect_v additional_n of_o humane_a eloquence_n yet_o grave_a and_o majestical_a and_o that_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o his_o very_a enemy_n his_o letter_n say_v they_o be_v weighty_a and_o powerful_a nor_o be_v there_o want_v in_o they_o some_o 10._o strain_n of_o rhetoric_n which_o sufficient_o testify_v his_o ability_n that_o way_n have_v he_o make_v it_o any_o part_n of_o his_o study_n and_o design_n indeed_o ibid._n s._n hierom_n be_v sometime_o too_o rude_a and_o bold_a in_o his_o censure_n of_o s._n paul_n stile_n and_o character_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o be_v a_o hebrew_n of_o the_o hebrew_n and_o admirable_o skill_a in_o the_o language_n of_o his_o nation_n he_o be_v great_o defective_a in_o the_o greek_a tongue_n though_o a_o late_a great_a 6._o critic_n be_v of_o another_o mind_n affirm_v he_o to_o have_v be_v as_o well_o or_o better_a skill_a in_o greek_a than_o in_o hebrew_n or_o in_o syriac_n wherein_o he_o can_v not_o sufficient_o express_v his_o conception_n in_o a_o way_n become_v the_o majesty_n of_o his_o sense_n and_o the_o matter_n he_o deliver_v nor_o transmit_v the_o elegancy_n of_o his_o native_a tongue_n into_o another_o language_n that_o hence_o he_o become_v obscure_a and_o intricate_a in_o his_o expression_n guilty_a many_o time_n of_o solecism_n and_o scarce_o tolerable_a syntax_n and_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o his_o humility_n but_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o make_v he_o say_v that_o he_o come_v not_o with_o the_o excellency_n of_o speech_n but_o in_o the_o power_n of_o god_n a_o censure_n from_o any_o other_o than_o s._n hierom_n that_o will_v have_v be_v just_o wonder_v at_o but_o we_o know_v the_o liberty_n that_o he_o take_v to_o censure_v any_o though_o the_o reverence_n due_a to_o so_o great_a a_o apostle_n may_v one_o will_v think_v have_v challenge_v a_o more_o modest_a censure_n at_o his_o hand_n however_o 106._o elsewhere_o he_o cry_v he_o up_o as_o a_o great_a master_n of_o composition_n